REPUBLIC OF NAURU
LAWS OF THE REPUBLIC OF NAURU
CIVIL PROCEDURE ACT 1972
CIVIL PROCEDURE RULES 1972
IN EXERCISE of the powers conferred on me by section 76 of the Civil Procedure Act
1972, I hereby make the following rules of court -
SHORT TITLE
1. These Rules may be cited as the Civil Procedure Rules 1972.
RULES OF COURT SET OUT IN SCHEDULE
2. The Rules of Court set out in the Schedule to these Rules shall, so far as they are
applicable, apply to proceedings in the Supreme Court and the District Court in all their
jurisdictions, other than their jurisdiction in criminal proceedings, unless otherwise stated and
except so far as they are inconsistent with any provision contained in any other written law
relating expressly to proceedings in any jurisdiction of either of the Courts:
Provided that, where any proceedings are pending determination in the Supreme Court or the
District Court at the commencement of these Rules, the Court may, upon application by any
party to such proceedings, give such directions as it thinks just for the procedure to be
followed in those proceedings.
MADE this 21st day of July, 1972.
I.R. Thompson
Chief Justice
______
SCHEDULE
(Rule 2)
RULES OF COURT
Order
1. Interpretation
2. Effect of non-compliance
3. Time
4. Commencement of civil proceedings
5. Writs of summons; general provisions
6. Originating summonses; general provisions
7. Interlocutory motions and summonses
8. Service of writs of summons and originating summonses
9. Service of writ or notice of writ out of jurisdiction
10. Entry of appearance to writ of summons and attendance on originating summons
11. Default of appearance or attendance
12. Causes of action, counterclaims and parties
13. Third party and similar proceedings
14. Interpleader
15. Pleadings
16. Default of pleadings
17. Amendment
18. Withdrawal and discontinuance
19. Payment into and out of court
20. Security for costs
21. Discovery and inspection
22. Summons for directions
23. Interrogatories
24. Admissions
25. Interlocutory injunctions, interlocutory preservation of property, etc.
26. Receivers
27. Applications and proceedings in chambers
28. Mode, etc., of trial
29. Setting suit down for trial
30. Proceedings at trial
31. Reference to referees for inquiry and report
32. Evidence: general
33. Evidence by deposition
34. Affidavits
35. Decrees, judgments and orders
36. Enforcement of judgments and orders
37. Committal
38. Applications for orders of mandamus, prohibition, certiorari, etc.
39. Appeals from Registrar
40. Costs
41. Registry practice
42. Service of documents
43. Paper, printing, notices and copies
44. Change of barrister and solicitor or pleader
45. Service of foreign process
46. Obtaining evidence for foreign courts, etc.
47. Arbitration proceedings
48. Admiralty proceedings
49. Probate proceedings
50. (Not yet made)
51. Proceedings transferred between Courts
52. Disability
53. Partners
54. Defamation suits
55. Moneylenders' suits
56. Administration and similar suits
57. Suits for specific performance, etc: Summary judgment
58. Debenture holders' suits: receiver's register
59. Mortgage suits
60. (Not yet made)
61. Bills of Sale Acts of England (applied)
62. Limitation Act 1963 of England (applied)
----------------
ORDER 1
INTERPRETATION
INTERPRETATION OF TERMS (O.1, r.1)
1. In these Rules of Court, unless the context otherwise requires –
"Admiralty action" means a suit instituted in the Supreme Court of such a nature that,
if the proceedings were taken in England, they could be dealt with by the High Court
of Justice only in the exercise of its Admiralty jurisdiction;
"bankruptcy" includes insolvency;
"cause book" means the book kept in the registry in which the number of, and other
details relating to, a suit are entered;
"judge" means a judge sitting in Chambers;
"originating process" means the document by which a suit is commenced;
"party" includes the party's barrister and solicitor or pleader, if he is represented in the
suit by a barrister and solicitor or pleader;
"pleader" means a person entitled to practise as a pleader in the Courts of Nauru;
"probate suit" means a suit relating to the grant, resealing or recall of probate or of
letters of administration;
"proper officer", in relation to any duty to be performed, means –
(a) in respect of the Supreme Court, the Registrar or such other officer as he
may direct to perform that duty; and
(b) in respect of the District Court, the Clerk or such other officer as the
resident magistrate may direct to perform that duty;
"receiver" includes a consignee or manager appointed by or under an order of the
Court;
"registry" means –
(a) in respect of the Supreme Court, the office of the Registrar at the Court
House;
(b) in respect of the District Court, the office of the Clerk at the Court House;
"the Act" means the Civil Procedure Act 1972;
"these Rules" means these Rules of Court.
FORMS (O.1, r.2)
2. The forms in Appendix A shall be used where applicable with such variations as the
circumstances of the particular case require, a reference to these Rules shall be taken to
include a reference to such forms.
REFERENCES TO ORDERS, RULES, ETC. (O.1, r.3)
3. Unless the context otherwise requires, any reference in these Rules to a specified Order,
rule or Appendix is a reference to that Order or rule of, or that Appendix to, these Rules and
any reference to a specified rule, paragraph or sub-paragraph is a reference to that rule of the
Order, that paragraph of the rule or that sub-paragraph of the paragraph in which the
reference occur.
REFERENCES TO SUITS FOR INJUNCTIONS, ETC., AND FOR POSSESSION OF
LAND (O.1, r.4)
4. Except where the context otherwise requires, references in these Rules to a suit for an
injunction or an order for specific performance or for possession of land shall be construed as
including references to a suit against the Republic for an order declaratory of the rights of the
parties or for an order declaring that the plaintiff is entitled as against the Republic to the land
or the possession thereof, as the case may be.
______
ORDER 2
EFFECT OF NON-COMPLIANCE
NON-COMPLIANCE WITH RULES (O.2, r.1)
1. (1) Where, in commencing or purporting to commence any proceedings or at any stage in
the course of or in connection with any proceedings, there has, by reason of any thing done or
left undone, been a failure to comply requirements of these Rules, where in respect of time,
place, manner, form or content or in any other respect the failure shall be treated as an
irregularity and shall not nullify the proceedings or any document, judgement or order
therein.
(2) The Court in which proceedings are being taken may, on the ground that there has been
such a failure as is mentioned in the last preceding paragraph, and on such terms as to costs
or otherwise as it thinks just, set aside either wholly or in part the proceedings in which the
failure occurred, any step taken in those proceedings or any document, judgement or order
therein or exercise its powers under these Rules to allow such amendments, if any, to be
made and to make such order, if any, dealing with the proceedings generally as it thinks fit.
APPLICATION TO SET ASIDE FOR IRREGULARITY (O.2, r.2)
2. (1) An application to set aside for irregularity any proceedings, any step taken in any
proceedings or any document, judgment or order therein shall not be allowed unless it is
made within a reasonable time and before the party applying has taken any fresh step after
becoming aware of the irregularity.
(2) An application under this rule may be made by summons or motion and the grounds of
objection must be stated in the summons or notice of motion.
_____
ORDER 3
TIME
VACATION EXCLUDED FROM TIME FOR SERVICE, ETC., OF PLEADINGS
(O.3, r.1)
1. Unless the Court in which any suit is pending otherwise directs, the period any vacation of
a Court directed under section 62 of the Courts Act 1972 shall be excluded in reckoning any
period prescribed by these Rules or by any order or direction for serving filing or amending
any pleading in any suit in that Court.
______
ORDER 4
COMMENCEMENT OF CIVIL PROCEEDINGS
MODE OF COMMENCING CIVIL PROCEEDINGS (O.4, r.1)
1. Civil proceedings in the Supreme Court and the District shall, subject to the exceptions
referred to in Rule 2, be commenced by a writ of summons.
COMMENCEMENT OTHERWISE THAN BY WRIT (O.4, r.2)
2. Civil proceedings may be commenced otherwise than by writ of summons –
(a) where application is made to a judge for leave for a suit to be commenced in the
Supreme Court, notwithstanding that the District Court has jurisdiction to try it;
(b) in the District Court, where a suit is commenced under section 14 of the Act, and
(c) where express provision is made by these Rules or any other written law for
commencement otherwise than by writ.
TITLE OF SUIT (O.4, r. 3)
3. Every suit shall be entitled "In the Supreme Court of Nauru" or "In the District Court of
Nauru", as the case may be.
RIGHT TO BEGIN, CARRY ON AND DEFEND SUIT IN PERSON OR BY LEGAL
REPRESENTATIVE (O.4, r.4)
4. Subject to any written law abrogating or restricting such right, any person may commence,
carry on or defend a civil suit in the Supreme Court or the District Court either by a barrister
and solicitor or pleader or in person.
______
ORDER 5
WRITS OF SUMMONS: GENERAL PROVISIONS
FORM OF WRIT OF SUMMONS (O.5, r.1)
1. Every writ of summons must be in Form No.1 of Appendix A.
WRIT TO BEAR DATE OF ISSUE (O.5, r.2)
2. Every writ of summons shall bear the date on which it is issued.
INDORSEMENT OF CLAIM (O.5, r.3)
3. (1) Before a writ of summons is issued it must be indorsed -
(a) with a statement of claim or, if the statement of claim is not indorsed on the writ,
with a concise statement of the nature of the claim made or the relief or remedy
required in the suit begun thereby;
(b) where the claim made by the plaintiff is for a debt or liquidated demand only with
a statement of the amount claimed in respect of the debt or demand and for costs and
also with a statement that further proceedings will be stayed if, within the time limited
for appearing, the defendant -
(i) pays the amount so claimed to the plaintiff, his barrister and solicitor or
agent; or
(ii) pays that amount into court.
(2) A defendant who pays moneys into court under this rule must give notice in Form 6 of
Appendix A to the plaintiff, his barrister and solicitor, pleader or agent.
INDORSEMENT AS TO CAPACITY (O.5, r.4)
4. (1) Before a writ of summons is issued it must be indorsed -
(a) where the plaintiff sues in a representative capacity, with a statement of the
capacity in which he sues;
(b) where a defendant is sued in a representative capacity, with a statement of the
capacity in which he is sued.
(2) Before a writ of summons is issued in a suit brought by a plaintiff who in bringing it is
acting by order or on behalf of a person resident outside Nauru, it must be indorsed with a
statement of that fact and with the address of the person so resident.
INDORSEMENT AS TO LEGAL REPRESENTATIVE AND ADDRESS (O.5, r.5)
5. (1) Before a writ of summons is issued it must be indorsed -
(a) where the plaintiff sues by a barrister and solicitor or pleader, with the plaintiff's
address and the name or firm and business address within Nauru of the barrister and
solicitor and pleader and also, if the barrister and solicitor or pleader has received his
instructions in a place outside Nauru, his business address in that place;
(b) where the plaintiff sues in person, with -
(i) the address of his place of residence and, if his place of residence is not
within Nauru or if he has no place of residence, the address of a place within
Nauru at or to which documents for him may be delivered or sent, and
(ii) his occupation.
(2) the address for service of a plaintiff shall be -
(a) where he sues by a barrister and solicitor or pleader, the business address in Nauru
indorsed on the writ, being the address of the barrister and solicitor or pleader;
(b) where he sues in person, the address within the jurisdiction indorsed on the writ.
(3) Where the name of a barrister and solicitor or pleader is indorsed on a writ he must, if any
defendant who has been served with or who has entered an appearance to the writ requests
him in writing so to do, declare in writing whether the writ was issued by him or with his
authority or privity.
(4) If a barrister and solicitor or pleader whose name is indorsed on a writ declares in writing
that the writ was not issued by him or with his authority or privity the Court may on the
application of any defendant who has been served with or who has entered an appearance to
the writ, stay all proceedings in the suit begun by the writ.
CONCURRENT WRIT (O.5, r.6)
6. (1) One or more concurrent writs of summons may, at the request of the plaintiff, be issued
at the time when the original writ is issued or at any time thereafter before the original writ
ceases to be valid.
(2) Without prejudice to the generality of the last preceding paragraph, a writ for service
within Nauru may be issued as a concurrent writ with one of which notice is to be served out
of Nauru and a writ of which notice is to be served out of Nauru may be issued as a
concurrent writ with one for service within Nauru.
(3) A concurrent writ is a true copy of the original writ with such differences only, if any, as
are necessary having regard to the purpose for which the writ is issued.
ISSUE OF WRIT (O.5, r.7)
7. (1) Writ of summons shall be issued out of the registry of the Court in which the suit is
being commenced.
(2) Issue of a writ of summons takes place upon its being sealed by an officer of the registry.
(3) The officer by whom a concurrent writ is issued must mark it as a concurrent writ with an
official stamp.
(4) No writ shall be sealed unless at the time of the tender thereof for sealing the person
tendering it leaves at the registry a copy thereof signed, where the plaintiff sues in person, by
him or, where he does not so sue, by his barrister and solicitor or pleader.
DURATION AND RENEWAL OF WRIT (O.5, r.8)
8. (1) For the purpose of service, a writ, other than a concurrent writ, is valid in the first
instance for twelve months beginning with the date of its issue and a concurrent writ is valid
in the first instance for the period of validity of the original writ which is unexpired at the
date of issue of the concurrent writ.
(2) Where a writ has not been served on a defendant, the Court out of which it was issued
may by order extend the validity of the writ from time to time for such period, not exceeding
twelve months at any one time, beginning with the day next following that on which it would
otherwise expire, as may be specified in the order, if an application for extension is made to
the Court before that day or such later day, if any, as the Court may allow.
(3) Before a writ, the validity of which has been extended under this rule, is served, it must be
marked with an official stamp showing the period for which the validity of the writ has been
so extended.
(4) Where the validity of a writ is extended by order made under this rule, the order shall
operate in relation to any other writ, whether original or concurrent, issued in the same action
which has not been served so as to extend the validity of that other writ until the expiration of
the period specified in the order.
_____
ORDER 6
ORIGINATING SUMMONSES - GENERAL PROVISIONS
ORIGINATING SUMMONS FOR LEAVE TO COMMENCE A SUIT IN THE
SUPREME COURT (O.6, r.1)
1. Every originating summons for leave to commence a suit in the Supreme Court shall be in
Form No.2 of Appendix A and shall in the first instance be issued ex parte.
ORIGINATING SUMMONS ISSUED UNDER SECTION 14 OF THE ACT (O.6, r.2)
2. Every summons to commence a suit in the District Court under section 14 of the Act shall
be in Form No. 3 of Appendix A.
OTHER ORIGINATING SUMMONSES (O.6, r.3)
3. Where any written law provides for the commencement of any proceedings by an
originating summons, otherwise than a summons under section 14 of the Act or a summons
for leave to commence a suit in the Supreme Court, every such originating summons shall,
unless express provision is made to the contrary, be in a form as near as possible to Form No.
2 of Appendix A.
APPLICATION TO, ORIGINATING SUMMONSES OF CERTAIN PROVISIONS
RELATING TO WRITS (O.5, r.4)
4. (1) The provisions of Rules 4 and 5 of Order 5 shall apply mutatis mutandis to every
originating summons.
(2) Upon sealing an originating summons, an officer of the registry shall insert the date and
time for attendance before the Court, judge or magistrate, as the case be.
(3) Subject to the last preceding paragraph, the provisions of Rule 7 of Order 5 shall apply
mutatis mutandis to originating summonses.
_____
ORDER 7
INTERLOCUTORY MOTIONS AND SUMMONSES
TYPE OF PROCESS TO BE USED (O.7, r.1)
1. Interlocutory applications shall, subject to the provisions of paragraph (2) of Rule 1 of
Order 27 be made -
(a) by notice of motion, where the application is to the Court; and
(b) by summons, where the application is to a judge onto a magistrate in Chambers.
FORMS (O.7, r.2)
2. (1) Every notice of motion shall be in Form No. 4 of Appendix A.
(2) Every summons shall be in Form No. 5 of Appendix A.
(3) Every notice of motion arid every summons shall bear the number of the suit assigned by
the registry.
TIME OF HEARING TO RE INSERTED (O.7, r.3)
3. Upon sealing a notice of motion or a summons, an officer of the registry shall insert the
date and time for attendance before the Court, judge, Registrar or magistrate, as the case may
be.
_____
ORDER 8
SERVICE OF WRITS OF SUMMONS AND ORIGINATING SUMMONSES
GENERAL PROVISIONS (O.8, r.1)
1. (1) Subject to the provisions of any written law and these Rules, a writ of summons must
be served personally on each defendant.
(2) Where a defendant's barrister and solicitor or pleader indorses on the writ a statement that
he accepts service of the writ on behalf of that defendant, the writ shall be deemed to have
been duly served on that defendant and to have been so served on the date on which the
indorsement was made.
(3) Where a writ is not duly served on a defendant but he enters an unconditional appearance
in the suit begun by the writ, the writ shall be deemed to have been duly served on him and to
have been so served on the date on which he entered the appearance.
(4) Where a writ is duly served on a defendant otherwise than by virtue of either of the last
two preceding paragraphs, then, subject to Rule 4 of Order 9, unless the person serving it has
indorsed on it the following particulars, that is to say, the day of the week and date on which
it was served, where it was served, the person on whom it was served, and, where he is not
the defendant, the capacity in which he was served, the plaintiff in the suit begun by the writ
shall not be entitled to enter final or interlocutory judgment against that defendant in default
of appearance or in default of defence.
SERVICE OF WRIT ON AGENT OF OVERSEAS PRINCIPAL (O.8, r.2)
2. (1) Where the Court out of which a writ of summons has been issued is satisfied on an ex
parte application that -
(a) a contract has been entered into within Nauru with or through an agent who is
either a natural person residing or carrying on business within Nauru or a body
corporate having a registered office or a place of business within Nauru;
(b) the principal for whom the agent was acting was at the time the contract was
entered into and is at the time of the application neither such a person nor such a body
corporate; and
(c) at the time of the application either the agent's authority has not been determined
or he is still in business relations with his principal,
the Court may authorise service of a writ beginning a suit relating to the contract to be
effected on the agent instead of the principal.
(2) An order under this rule authorising service of a writ on a defendant's agent must limit a
time within which the defendant must enter an appearance.
(3) Where an order is made under this rule authorising service of a writ on a defendant's
agent, a copy of the order and of the writ must be sent by post to the defendant at his address
out of Nauru.
SERVICE OF WRIT IN PURSUANCE OF CONTRACT (O.8, r.3,)
3. (1) Where -
(a) a contract contains a term to the effect that a Court of the Republic shall have
jurisdiction to hear and determine any suit in respect of a contract or, apart from any
such term, a Court of the Republic has jurisdiction to hear and determine any such
suit; and
(b) the contract provides that, in the event of any suit in respect of the contract being
begun, the process by which it is begun may be served on the defendant, or on such
other person on his behalf as may be specified in the contract, in such manner or at
such place, whether within or out of Nauru, as may be so specified,
then, if a suit in respect of the contract is begun in that Court and the writ by which it is
begun is served in accordance with the contract, the writ shall, subject to the next following
paragraph, be deemed to have been duly served on the defendant.
(2) A writ which is served out of Nauru in accordance with a contract shall not be deemed to
have been duly served on the defendant by virtue of the last preceding paragraph unless leave
to serve the writ, or notice thereof, out of Nauru has been granted under Rule 1 or Rule 2 of
Order 9.
SERVICE OF ORIGINATING SUMMONS OTHER THAN A SUMMONS UNDER
SECTION 14 (O.8, r.4)
4. The preceding rules of this Order shall apply in relation to an originating summons for
leave to commence a suit in the Supreme Court where the judge orders service and, where
under the provisions of these Rules or any other written law a suit may be commenced by an
originating process other than a writ of summons, to such originating process.
SERVICE OF ORIGINATING SUMMONS UNDER SECTION 14 OF THE ACT (O.8,
r.5)
5. An originating summons commencing a suit under section 14 of the Act shall be served on
the defendant personally or, if he cannot by the exercise of due diligence be found, on an
adult person residing in the house in which the defendant usually resides or, if he is outside
Nauru, in which he usually resided immediately before he departed from Nauru.
WHO MAY SERVE (O.8, r.6)
6. A writ of summons or originating summons may be served in Nauru by any person other
than a party to the suit.
COST OF SERVICE (O.8, r.7)
7. A person serving a writ of summons or originating process in Nauru may be paid by the
party on whose behalf he serves it a fee therefor not exceeding five dollars.
_____
ORDER 9
SERVICE OF WRIT OR NOTICE OF WRIT OUT OF JURISDICTION
PRINCIPAL CASES IN WHICH SERVICE OF WRIT, OR NOTICE THEREOF OUT
OF JURISDICTION IS PERMISSIBLE (O.9, r.1)
1. (1) Provided that the writ does not contain any such claim as is mentioned in sub-
paragraph (a) of Rule 2(1) of Order 48, service out of Nauru of a writ of summons or notice
of a writ of summons issued out of the Supreme Court is permissible with the leave of the
Court in the following cases, that is to say -
(a) if the whole subject-matter of the suit begun by the writ is land situated within
Nauru, with or without rents or profits, or the perpetuation of testimony relating to
land so situated;
(b) if an act, deed, will, contract, obligation or liability affecting land situated within
Nauru is sought to be construed, rectified, set aside or enforced in the suit begun by
the writ;
(c) if in the suit begun by the writ relief is sought against a person domiciled or
ordinarily resident within Nauru;
(d) if the suit begun by the writ is for the administration of the estate of a person who
died domiciled within Nauru or if the suit begun by the writ is for any relief or
remedy which might be obtained in any such suit as aforesaid;
(e) if the suit begun by the writ is for the execution, as to property situated within
Nauru, of the trusts of a written instrument, being trusts that ought to be executed
according to the law of Nauru and of which the person to be served with the writ is a
trustee or if the suit begun by the writ is for any relief or remedy which might be
obtained in any such suit as aforesaid;
(f) if the suit begun by the writ is brought to enforce, rescind, dissolve, annul or
otherwise affect a contract, or to recover damages or obtain other relief in respect of
the breach of a contract, being, in either case, a contract which -
(i) was made within Nauru; or
(ii) was made by or through an agent trading or residing within Nauru on
behalf of a principal trading or residing out of Nauru; or
(iii) is by its terms, or by implication, governed by Nauruan law;
(g) if the suit begun by the writ is brought in respect of a breach committed within
Nauru of a contract made within or out of Nauru, and irrespective of the fact, if such
be the case, that the breach was preceded or accompanied by a breach committed out
of Nauru that rendered impossible the performance of so much of the contract as
ought to have been performed within Nauru;
(h) if the suit begun by the writ is founded on a tort committed within Nauru;
(i) if in the suit begun by the writ an injunction is sought ordering the defendant to do
or refrain from doing anything within Nauru, whether or not damages are also
claimed in respect of a failure to do or the doing of that thing;
(j) if, the suit begun by the writ being properly brought against a person duly served
within Nauru, a person out of the jurisdiction is a necessary or proper party thereto;
(k) if the suit begun by the writ is either by a mortgagee of property situated within
Nauru, other than land, and seeks the sale of the property, the foreclosure of the
mortgage or delivery by the mortgagor of possession of the property but not an order
for payment of any moneys due under the mortgage or by a mortgagor of property so
situated, other than land, and seeks redemption of the mortgage, reconveyance of the
property or delivery by the mortgagee of possession of the property but not a personal
judgment.
In this paragraph "mortgage" includes a charge or lien, "mortgagee" means a person entitled
to, or interested in, a mortgage and "mortgagor" means a person entitled to, or interested in
property subject to a mortgage.
(2) Service of a writ of summons or a notice thereof in any place out of Nauru is permissible
without the leave of the Court if every claim made in the suit begun by the writ is one which
by virtue of any written law the Supreme Court has power to hear and determine
notwithstanding that the person against whom the claim is made is not within Nauru or that
the wrongful act, neglect or default giving rise to the claim did not take place within Nauru.
(3) Where a writ or notice of a writ is to be served out of Nauru under the last preceding
paragraph, the time to be inserted in the writ or notice within which the defendant served
therewith must enter an appearance shall be limited in accordance with the practice adopted
under paragraph (3) of Rule 3.
SERVICE OUT OR JURISDICTION IN SUITS RELATING TO CERTAIN
CONTRACTS (O.9, r.2)
2. Where it appears to a Court that a contract contains a term to the effect that the Supreme
Court shall have jurisdiction to hear and determine any suit in respect of the contract, the
Court may grant leave for service out of Nauru of the writ or notice of the writ by which a
suit in respect of the contract is begun.
APPLICATION FOR AND GRANT OF, LEAVE TO SERVE WRIT OR NOTICE OF
WRIT OUT OF NAURU (O.9, r.3)
(1) An application for the grant of leave under Rule 1 or Rule 2 must be supported by an
affidavit stating the grounds on which the application is made and that, in the deponent's
belief, the plaintiff has a good cause of action, and showing in what place or country the
defendant is or probably may be found.
(2) No such leave shall be granted unless it shall be made sufficiently to appear to the Court
that the case is a proper one for service out of Nauru under this Order.
(3) An order granting under Rule 1 or Rule 2 leave to serve a writ, or notice of a writ, out of
Nauru must limit a time within which the defendant to be served must enter an appearance.
SERVICE OF NOTICE OF WRIT OUT OF NAURU: GENERAL (O.9, r.4)
4. (1) Subject to the following provisions of this Rule, Rule 1 of Order 8 and Rule 4 of Order
42, shall apply in relation to the service of a writ of summons or notice of a writ
notwithstanding that the writ or notice is to be served out of Nauru.
(2) Nothing in this Rule or in any order or direction of the Court made by virtue of it shall
authorise or require the doing of anything in a country in which service is to be effected
which is contrary to the law of that country.
(3) A writ or notice of a writ which is to be served out of Nauru need not be served
personally can the person required to be served so long as it is served on him in accordance
with the law of the country in which service is effected.
(4) Where a certificate under the following provisions of this rule is produced in relation to
the service of a writ or notice of a writ in accordance with Rule 5, paragraph (4) of Rule 1 of
Order 8 shall not apply in relation to that service.
(5) An official certificate stating that a notice of a writ as regards which Rule 5 has been
complied with has been served on a person personally, or in accordance with the law of the
country in which service was effected, on a specified date, being a certificate -
(a) by a Nauruan consular authority, or the consular authority of another country
prescribed by the Minister by notice in the Gazette, in that country; or
(b) by the government or judicial authorities of that country,
shall be evidence of the facts so stated.
(6) A document purporting to be such a certificate as is mentioned in the last preceding
paragraph shall, until the contrary is proved, be deemed to be such a certificate.
SERVICE OF WRIT OR NOTICE OF WRIT THROUGH FOREIGN
GOVERNMENTS, ETC. (O.9, r.5)
5. (1) Where in accordance with these Rules a writ of summons or notice of a writ is to be
served on a defendant in any country with respect to which there subsists any Convention
providing for service in that country of process of the Supreme Court, the Writ or notice may
be served -
(a) through the judicial authorities of that country; or
(b) through a Nauruan consular authority in that country, subject to any provision of
the Convention as to the nationality of persons who may be so served.
(2) Where in accordance with these Rules a writ or notice of a writ is to be served on a
defendant in any country with respect to which there does not subsist a Convention providing
for service in that country of process of the Supreme Court, the writ or notice may be served -
(a) through the government of that country, where that government is willing to effect
service; or
(b) through a Nauruan consular authority, or the consular authority of another country
prescribed by the Minister by notice in the Gazette, in that country, except where
service through such an authority is contrary of the law of that country.
(3) Where a person wishes to serve a writ or notice of a writ in any country -
(a) through the judicial authorities of that country under paragraph (1); or
(b) through a Nauruan consular authority, or the consular authority of another
country, under paragraph (1) or paragraph (2); or
(c) through the government of that country under paragraph (2);
that person must lodge in the registry a request for service of the writ or a notice thereof by
that method, together with a copy of the writ or notice and an additional copy thereof for each
person to be served.
(4) Every copy of a writ or notice lodged under paragraph (3) must be accompanied by a
translation of the writ or notice in the official language of the country in which service is to
be effected or, if there is more than one official language of that country, in any one of those
languages which is appropriate to the place in that country where service is to be effected;
Provided that this paragraph shall not apply in relation to a copy of a writ or notice which is
to be served in a country the official language of which is, or the official languages of which
include, English, or is to be served in any country by a Nauruan or other consular authority
on a Nauruan citizen or a British subject, unless the service is to be effected under the last
preceding paragraph and the Convention with respect of that country expressly requires the
copy to be accompanied by a translation.
(5) Every translation lodged under the last preceding paragraph must be certified by the
person making it to be a correct translation; and the certificate must contain a statement of
that person's full name, address and occupation and of his qualifications for making the
translation.
(6) Documents duly lodged under paragraph (3) shall be sent by the Registrar to the Chief
Secretary with a request that he arrange for the writ or the notice to be served by the method
indicated in the request lodged under paragraph (3) or, where alternative methods are so
indicated, by such one of those methods as is most convenient.
UNDERTAKING TO PAY EXPENSES OF SERVICE INCURRED BY THE
REPUBLIC (O.9, r.6)
6. Every request lodged under paragraph (3) of Rule 5 must contain an undertaking by the
person making the request to be responsible personally for all expenses incurred by or on
behalf of the Republic in respect of the service requested and, on receiving due notification of
the amount of those expenses, to pay that amount to the Chief Secretary and to produce a
receipt for the payment to the Registrar.
SERVICE OF ORIGINATING SUMMONS, NOTICE OF MOTION, ETC. (O.9, r.7)
7. (1) Service out of Nauru of an originating summons issued out of the Supreme Court is
permissible with the leave of the Court.
(2) Service out of Nauru of any summons, notice or order issued, given or made in any
proceedings is permissible with the leave of the Court.
(3) Paragraphs (1) and (2) of Rule 3 shall, so far as applicable, apply in relation to an
application for the grant of leave under this rule as they apply in relation to an application for
the grant of leave under Rule 1 or Rule 2.
(4) Rules 4, 5 and 6 shall apply in relation to any document for the service of which out of
Nauru leave has been granted under this rule as they apply in relation to a writ of summons or
a notice thereof.
_____
ORDER 10
ENTRY OF APPEARANCE TO WRIT OF SUMMONS AND ATTENDANCE ON
ORIGINATING SUMMONS
MODE OF ENTERING APPEARANCE (O.10, r.1)
1. (1) Subject to the next following paragraph and to Rule 2 of Order 52, a defendant to a suit
begun by writ of summons may, whether or not he is sued as a trustee or personal
representative or in any other representative capacity, enter an appearance in the suit and
defend it by a barrister and solicitor or pleader of in person.
(2) Except as expressly provided by any enactment, a defendant to such a suit who is a body
corporate may not enter an appearance in the suit or defend it otherwise than by a barrister
and solicitor or pleader.
(3) An appearance is entered by properly completing the requisite documents, that is to say, a
memorandum of appearance, as defined by Rule 2, and a copy thereof, and handing them in
at, or sending them by post to, the registry of the Court out of which the writ was issued.
(4) If two or more defendants to a suit enter an appearance by the same barrister and solicitor
or pleader and at the same time, only one set of the requisite documents need be completed
and delivered for those defendants.
(5) Where a defendant attends in person at the registry of the Court, the Registrar or the
Clark, as the case may be, shall, if requested to do so, prepare, or direct an officer of the
registry to prepare, the memorandum of appearance for the defendant and shall inform the
defendant, or cause an officer of the registry to inform the defendant, of the provisions of
paragraph (2) of Rule 3 relating to sending a copy of the memorandum of appearance to the
plaintiff, of Order 16 relating to the consequences of failing to serve a defence within the
time fixed by these Rules and of Rule 23 of Order 15 relating to verbal statements of defence.
MEMORANDUM OF APPEARANCE (O.10, r.2)
2. (1) A memorandum of appearance is a request to the registry to enter an appearance for the
defendant or defendants specified in the memorandum.
(2) A memorandum of appearance must be in Form No. 7 or Form No. 8 of Appendix A, as is
appropriate, and both the memorandum of appearance and the copy thereof required for
entering an appearance must be signed by the barrister and solicitor or pleader by whom the
defendant appears or, if the defendant appears in person, by the defendant.
(3) A memorandum of appearance must specify -
(a) in the case of a defendant appearing in person, the address of his place of
residence and, if his place of residence is not within Nauru or if he has no place of
residence, the address of a place within Nauru at or to which documents for him may
be delivered or sent; and
(b) in the case of a defendant appearing by a barrister and solicitor or pleader, a
business address of his barrister and solicitor or pleader within Nauru;
and, where the defendant enters an appearance in person, the address within Nauru specified
under sub-paragraph (a) shall be his address for service, but otherwise the business address of
his barrister and solicitor or pleader shall be his address for service.
(4) Where the defendant enters an appearance by a barrister and solicitor or pleader who is
acting as agent for another barrister and solicitor or pleader, the memorandum of appearance
must state that the first-named barrister and solicitor or pleader so acts and must also state the
name and address of that other barrister and solicitor or pleader.
(5) If the Court out of which the writ was issued is satisfied on application by the plaintiff
that any address specified in the memorandum of appearance is not genuine, the Court may
set aside the appearance.
PROCEDURE ON RECEIPT OF MEMORANDUM OF APPEARANCE (O.10, r.3)
3. (1) On receiving the requisite documents an officer of the registry must in all cases affix to
the copy of the memorandum of appearance an official stamp showing the date on which he
received those documents and enter the appearance in the cause book, and -
(a) if the requisite documents were handed in at the registry, hand back that copy of
the memorandum, and
(b) If they were sent by post, send that copy by post to the plaintiff or, as the case may
be, his barrister and solicitor or pleader at the plaintiff's address for service and also
send by post to the defendant or, as the case may be, his barrister and solicitor or
pleader at the defendant's address for service a notice of appearance, stamped with an
official stamp showing that date, stating that the defendant specified therein entered
an appearance on that date.
(2) Where the defendant enters an appearance by handing in the requisite documents at the
registry, he must on the date on which he enters the appearance send by post to the plaintiff,
if the plaintiff sues in person, but otherwise to the plaintiff's barrister and solicitor or pleader,
at the plaintiff's address for service, the copy of the memorandum of appearance handed back
to him under paragraph (1).
TIME LIMITED FOR APPEARING (O.10, r.4)
4. References in these Rules to the time limited for appearing are reference -
(a) in the case of a writ served within Nauru, to fourteen days after service of the writ,
including the day of service, or, where that time has been extended by or by virtue of
these Rules, to that time as so extended; and
(b) in the case of a writ or notice of a writ served out of Nauru, to the time limited
under paragraph (3) of Rule 3 of Order 9, or, where that time has been extended as
aforesaid, to that time as so extended.
LATE APPEARANCE (O.10, r.5)
5. (1) A defendant may not enter an appearance in a suit after judgment has been entered
therein except with the leave of the Court in which the judgment was entered.
(2) Except as provided by the last preceding paragraph, nothing in these Rules or any writ or
order thereunder shall be construed as precluding a defendant from entering an appearance in
a suit after the time limited for appearing, but if a defendant enters an appearance after that
time, he shall not, unless the Court otherwise orders, be entitled to serve a defence or do any
other thing later than if he had appeared within that time.
CONDITIONAL APPEARANCE (O.10, r.6)
6. (1) A defendant to a suit may with the leave of the Court in which the suit has been
commenced enter a conditional appearance in the suit.
(2) A conditional appearance, except by a person sued as a partner of a firm in the name of
that firm and served as a partner, is to be treated for all purposes as an unconditional
appearance unless the Court otherwise orders or the defendant applies to the Court, within the
time limited for the purpose, for an order under Rule 7 and the Court makes an order
thereunder.
APPLICATION TO SET WRIT ASIDE, ETC. (O.10, r.7)
7. (1) A defendant to a suit commenced by a writ of summons may at any time before
entering an appearance therein, or, if he has entered a conditional appearance, within fourteen
days after entering the appearance, apply to the Court out of which the writ was issued for an
order setting aside the writ or service of the writ, or notice of the writ, on him, or declaring
that the writ or notice has not been duly served on him or discharging any order giving leave
to serve the writ or notice on him out of Nauru.
(2) An application under this rule must be made by summons.
ATTENDANCE IN COMPLIANCE WITH ORIGINATING SUMMONS (O.10, r.8)
8. A defendant named in and served with an originating summons must attend, either in
person or by a barrister and solicitor or pleader, before the Court, judge, Registrar or
magistrate, as required thereby, on the date and at the time and place specified.
_____
ORDER 11
DEFAULT OF APPEARANCE OR ATTENDANCE
CLAIM BY WRIT FOR LIQUIDATED DEMAND (O.11, r.1)
1. (1) Where a writ of summons is indorsed with a claim against a defendant for a liquidated
demand only, then, if that defendant fails to enter an appearance, the plaintiff may, after the
time limited for appearing, enter final judgment against that defendant for a sum not
exceeding that claimed by the writ in respect of the demand and for costs, and proceed with
the action against the other defendants, if any.
(2) A claim shall not be prevented from being treated for the purposes of this rule as a claim
for a liquidated demand by reason only that part of the claim is for interest accruing after the
date of the writ at an unspecified rate, but any such interest shall be computed from the date
of the writ to the date of entering judgment at the rate of 5 per cent per annum.
CLAIM FOR UNLIQUIDATED DAMAGES (O.11, r.2)
2. Where a writ of summons is indorsed with a claim against a defendant for unliquidated
damages only, then, if that defendant fails to enter an appearance, the plaintiff may, after the
time limited for appearing, enter interlocutory judgment against that defendant for damages
to be assessed and costs, and proceed with the suit against the other defendants, if any.
CLAIM IN DETINUE (O.11, r.3)
3. Where a writ of summons is indorsed with a claim against a defendant relating to the
detention of goods only, then, if that defendant fails to enter an appearance, the plaintiff may,
after the time limited for appearing, at his option enter either -
(a) interlocutory judgment against that defendant for the delivery of the goods or their
value to be assessed and costs; or
(b) interlocutory judgment for the value of the goods to be assessed and costs, and
proceed with the suit against the other defendants, if any.
CLAIM FOR POSSESSION OF LAND (O.11, r.4)
4. (1) When, a writ of summons is indorsed with a claim against a defendant far possession of
land only, then, if that defendant fails to enter an appearance the plaintiff may, after the time
limited for appearing, and on producing a certificate by his barrister and solicitor or pleader,
or, if he sues in person, an affidavit, stating that he is not claiming any relief in the suit of the
nature specified in Rule 1 of Order 59, enter judgment for possession of the land as against
that defendant and costs, and proceed with the suit against the other defendants, if any.
(2) Where there is more than one defendant, judgment entered under this rule shall not be
enforced against any defendant unless and until judgment for possession of the land has been
entered against all the defendants.
MIXED CLAIMS (O.11, r.5)
5. Where a writ issued against any defendant is indorsed with two or more of the claims
mentioned in the foregoing rules, and no other claim, then, if that defendant fails to enter an
appearance, the plaintiff may, after the time limited for appearing, enter against that
defendant such judgment in respect of any such claim as he would be entitled to enter under
those rules if that were the only claim indorsed on the writ, and proceed with the suit against
the other defendants, if any.
OTHER CLAIMS BY WRIT OF SUMMONS (O.11, r.6)
6. (1) Where a writ of summons is indorsed with a claim of a description not mentioned in
Rules 1 to 4, then, if any defendant fails to enter an appearance, the plaintiff may, after the
time limited for appearing and upon filing an affidavit proving due service of the writ on that
defendant and, where the statement of claim was not indorsed on or served with the writ,
upon serving a statement of claim on him, proceed with the suit as if that defendant had
entered an appearance.
(2) Where a writ issued against a defendant is indorsed as aforesaid, but by reason of the
defendant's satisfying the claim or complying with the demands thereof or any other like
reason it has become unnecessary for the plaintiff to proceed with the suit, then, if the
defendant fails to enter an appearance, the plaintiff may, after the time limited for appearing,
enter judgment with the leave of the Court against that defendant far costs.
(3) An application for leave to enter judgment under the last preceding paragraph shall be by
summons which must, unless the Court otherwise orders, and notwithstanding anything in
Rule 9 of Order 42, be served on the defendant against whom it is sought to enter judgment.
CLAIM BY ORIGINATING SUMMONS UNDER SECTION 14 OF THE ACT (O.11,
r.7)
7. Where a defendant named in an originating summons in a suit commenced under section
14 of the Act fails to attend, either in person or by a barrister and solicitor or pleader, before
the District Court on the date and at the time and place specified therein and the plaintiff or
his barrister and solicitor or pleader is present, the Court shall, unless it has reason to believe
that the failure is not due to the fault of the defendant or his barrister and solicitor or pleader
or the plaintiff consents to the proceedings being adjourned, proceed to hear and determine
the suit forthwith not withstanding the absence of the defendant.
PROOF OF SERVICE OF WRIT, ETC. (O.11, r.8)
8. (1) Judgment shall not be entered against a defendant under this Order nor shall the District
Court hear and determine a suit in the absence of the defendant under Rule 7 unless -
(a) an affidavit is filed by or on behalf of the plaintiff proving due service of the writ
of summons, notice of the writ or originating summons on the defendant; or
(b) the plaintiff produces the writ indorsed by the defendant's barrister and solicitor or
pleader with a statement that he accepts service of the writ on the defendant's behalf.
(2) Where, in a suit begun by writ, an application is made to the Court out of which the writ
was issued for an order affecting a party who has failed to enter an appearance, the Court
hearing the application may require to be satisfied in such manner as it thinks fit that the
party is in default of appearance.
SETTING ASIDE JUDGMENT (O.11, r.9)
9. (1) The Court in which any judgment has been entered in pursuance of this Order, other
than under Rule 7, may set aside or vary such judgment on such terms as it thinks just.
(2) Where the District Court has heard and determined a suit in the absence of a defendant in
pursuance of Rule 7, it may, on such terms as it thinks fit, set aside or vary the judgment in
such suit in respect of that defendant if it is satisfied that the defendant's failure to attend,
either in person or by a barrister and solicitor or pleader, as required by the summons was not
due to his own fault or the fault of his barrister and solicitor or pleader and that the defendant
has an arguable defence to the claim.
______
ORDER 12
CAUSES OF ACTION, COUNTERCLAIMS AND PARTIES
JOINDER OF CAUSES OF ACTION (O.12, r.1)
1. (1) Subject to section 14 of the Act, to the provisions of any written laws relating to the
jurisdiction of the District Court and to paragraph (1) of Rule 6, a plaintiff may in one suit
claim relief against the same defendant in respect of more than one cause of action -
(a) if the plaintiff claims, and the defendant is alleged to be liable, in the same
capacity in respect of all the causes of action;
(b) if the plaintiff claims or the defendant is alleged to be liable in the capacity of
executor or administrator of an estate in respect of one or more of the causes of action
and in his personal capacity but with reference to the same estate in respect of all the
others; or
(c) with the leave of the Court.
(2) An application for leave under this rule must be made ex parte by originating summons
before the issue of the writ, and the affidavit in support must state the grounds of the
application.
COUNTERCLAIM AGAINST PLAINTIFF (O.12, r.2)
2. (1) Subject to the provisions of any written laws relating to the jurisdiction of the District
Court and to paragraph (2) of Rule 6, a defendant in any suit, other than a suit commenced
under section 14 of the Act, who alleges that he has any claim or is entitled to any relief or
remedy against a plaintiff in the suit in respect of any matter, whenever and however arising,
may, instead of bringing a separate suit, make a counterclaim in respect of that matter; and
where he does so he must add the counterclaim to his defence.
(2) Rule 1 shall apply in relation to a Counterclaim as if the counterclaim were a separate suit
and as if the person making the counterclaim were the plaintiff and the person against whom
it is made a defendant.
(3) A counterclaim may be proceeded with notwithstanding that judgment is given for the
plaintiff in the suit or that the suit is stayed, discontinued or dismissed.
(4) Where a defendant establishes a counterclaim against the claim of the plaintiff and there
is a balance in favour of one of the parties, the Court may give judgment for the balance, so,
however, that this provision shall not be taken as affecting the Court's discretion with respect
to costs.
COUNTERCLAIM AGAINST ADDITIONAL PARTIES (O.12, r.3)
3. (1) Where a defendant to a suit, other than a suit commenced under section 14 of the Act,
who makes a counterclaim against the plaintiff alleges that any other person, whether or not a
party to the suit, is liable to him along with the plaintiff in respect of the subject-matter of the
counterclaim, or claims against such other person any relief relating to or connected with the
original subject-matter of the suit, then, subject to paragraph (2) of Rule 6, he may join that
other person as a party against whom the counterclaim is made.
(2) Where a defendant joins a person as a party against whom he makes a counterclaim, he
must add that person's name to the title of the suit and serve on him a copy of the
counterclaim; and a person on whom a copy of a counterclaim is served under this paragraph
shall, if he is not already a party to the suit, become a party to it as from the time of service
with the same rights in respect of his defence to the counterclaim and otherwise as if he had
been duly sued in the ordinary way by the party making the counterclaim.
(3) A defendant who is required by the last preceding paragraph to serve a copy of the
counterclaim made by him on any person who before service is already a party to the suit
must do so within the period within which by virtue of Rule 2 of Order 15 he must serve on
the plaintiff the defence to which the counterclaim is added.
(4) Where by virtue of paragraph (2) a copy of a counterclaim is required to be served on a
person who is not already a party to the suit, the following provisions of these Rules, namely,
Order 8 (except paragraph (4) of Rule 1), Orders 9, 10 and 11 and Rule 4 of Order 48 shall,
subject to the last preceding paragraph, apply in relation to the counterclaim and the
proceedings arising from it as if -
(a) the counterclaim were a writ and the proceedings arising from it a suit; and
(b) the party making the counterclaim were a plaintiff and the party against whom it is
made a defendant in that suit.
(5) A copy of a counterclaim required to be served on a person who is not already a party to
the suit must be indorsed with a notice, in Form No. 9 of Appendix A, addressed to that
person stating the effect of Rule 1 of Order 10 as applied by the last preceding paragraph.
COUNTERCLAIMS IN SUITS COMMENCED UNDER SECTION 14 OF THE ACT
(O.12, r.4)
4. (1) The provisions of Rule 1 shall apply to suits commenced under section 14 of the Act
but the total sum claimed in respect of all the causes of action shall not exceed $100 and no
claim shall be included which is not a liquidated demand.
(2) The provisions of Rules 2 and 3 shall not apply to suits commenced under section 14 of
the Act.
(3) Where a defendant in a suit commenced under section 14 of the Act alleges that he has
any claim or is entitled to any relief or remedy against the plaintiff in the suit, whenever and
however arising, he may, instead of bringing a separate suit, serve on the plaintiff not less
than two days before the date of the hearing shown on the summons a notice in Form No. 10
of Appendix A stating the nature of such claim, relief or remedy alleged and, if he does so,
shall file a copy thereof in the registry of the District Court before the date of the hearing.
(4) Where a defendant serves a notice on the plaintiff under the last preceding paragraph, the
Court shall -
(a) if the defendant's claim consists only of a liquidated demand for an amount not
exceeding $100, hear and determine the counterclaim as part of the suit; and
(b) if the defendant's claim does not consist only of a liquidated demand for an
amount not exceeding $100, either -
(i) dismiss the suit and direct that it be recommenced by a writ of summons; or
(ii) hear and determine only the plaintiff's claim.
(5) Where under the last preceding paragraph the Court hears and determines only the
plaintiff's claim, it shall make such order regarding the execution of the judgment in the suit
as it considers necessary to ensure that the defendant's interests will not be prejudiced thereby
if with due expedition he commences and prosecutes a suit to enforce his claim against the
plaintiff.
JOINDER OF PARTIES (O.12, r.5)
5. (1) Subject to paragraph (1) of Rule 6, two or more persons may be, joined together in one
suit as plaintiffs or as defendants with the leave of the Court or where -
(a) if separate suits were brought by or against each of them, as the case may be, some
common question of law or fact would arise in all the suits, and
(b) all rights to relief claimed in the suit, whether they are joint, several or alternative,
are in respect of or arise out of the same transaction or series of transactions.
(2) Where the plaintiff in any suit claims any relief to which any other person is entitled
jointly with him, all persons so entitled must, subject to the provisions of any written laws
making express provision to the contrary or unless the Court gives leave to the contrary, be
parties to the suit and any of them who does not consent to being joined as a plaintiff must,
subject to any order made by the Court on an application for leave under this paragraph, be
made a defendant.
This paragraph shall not apply to a probate suit.
(3) Where relief is claimed in a suit against a defendant who is alleged to be jointly liable
with some other person and also severally liable, that other person need not be made a
defendant to the suit; but where persons are jointly, but not severally, liable under a contract
and relief is claimed against some but not all of those persons in an action in respect of that
contract, the Court may, on the application of any defendant to the suit, by order stay
proceedings in the suit until the other persons so liable are added as defendants.
COURT MAY ORDER SEPARATE TRIAL. (O.12, r.6)
6. (1) If claims in respect of two or more causes of action are included by a plaintiff in the
same suit or by a defendant in a counterclaim, or if two or more plaintiffs or defendants are
parties to the same suit, and it appears to the Court that the joinder of causes of action or of
parties as the case maybe, may embarrass or delay the trial or is otherwise inconvenient, the
Court may order separate trials or make such other order as may be expedient.
(2) if it appears on the application of any party against whom a counterclaim is made that
they subject-matter of the counterclaim ought for any reason to be disposed of by a separate
suit, the Court may order the counterclaim to be struck out or may order it to be tried
separately or make such other order as may be expedient.
MISJOINDER AND NONJOINDER OF PARTIES (O.12, r.7)
7. (1) No suit shall be defeated by reason of the misjoinder or nonjoinder of any party; and
the Court may in any suit determine the issue or questions in dispute so far as they affect the
rights and interests of the persons who are parties to the suit.
(2) At any stage of the proceedings in any suit the Court may on such terms as it thinks just
and either of its own motion or on application -
(a) order any person who has been improperly or unnecessarily made a party or who
has for any reason ceased to be a proper or necessary party to cease to be a party;
(b) order any person who ought to have been joined as a party or whose presence
before the court is necessary to ensure that all matters in dispute in the suit may be
effectually and completely determined and adjudicated upon be added as a party;
but no person shall be added as a plaintiff without his consent signified in writing or in such
manner as may be authorised.
(3) An application by any person for an order under the last preceding paragraph adding him
as a defendant must, except with the leave of the Court, be supported by an affidavit showing
his interest in the matters in dispute in the suit.
CHANGE OF PARTIES BY REASON OF DEATH, ETC. (O.12, r.8)
(1) Where a party to a suit dies car becomes bankrupt but the cause of action survives, the
suit shall not abate by reason of the death of bankruptcy.
(2) Where at any stage of the proceedings in any suit the interest or liability of any party is
assigned or transmitted to or devolves upon some other person, the Court may, if it thinks it
necessary in order to ensure that all matters in dispute in the suit may be effectually and
completely determined and adjudicated upon, order that other person to be made a party to
the suit and the proceedings to be carried on as if he had been substituted for the first
mentioned party.
An application for an order under this paragraph may be made ex parte.
(3) An order may be made under this rule for a person to be made a party to a suit
notwithstanding that he is already a party to it on the other side of the record, or on the same
side but in a different capacity; but -
(a) if he is already a party on the other side, the order shall be treated as containing a
direction that he shall cease to be a party on that other side, and
(b) if he is already a party on the same side but in another capacity, the order may
contain a direction that he shall cease to be a party in that other capacity.
(4) The person on whose application an order is made under this rule must procure the order
to be noted in the cause book, and after the order has been so noted that person must, unless
the Court otherwise directs, serve the order on every other person who is a party to the suit or
who becomes or ceases to be a party by virtue of the order and serve with the order on any
person who becomes a defendant a copy of the writ or originating summons by which the suit
was commenced.
(5) Any application to the Court by a person with an order made ex parte under this rule for
the discharge or variation of the order must be made within 14 days after the service of the
order on that person.
PROVISIONS CONSEQUENTIAL ON MAKING OF ORDER UNDER RULE 7 OR
RULE 8 (O.12, r.9)
9. (1) Where an order is made under Rule 7 the writ of summons or originating summons by
which the suit in question was begun must be amended accordingly and must be indorsed
with -
(a) a reference to the order in pursuance of which the amendment is made; and
(b) the date on which the amendment is made;
and the amendment must be made within such period as maybe specified in the order or, if no
period is so specified, within 14 days after the making of the order.
(2) Where by an order under Rule 7 a person is to be made a defendant, the rules as to service
of a writ of summons or originating summons shall apply accordingly to service of the
amended writ or summons on him, but before serving the writ or summons on him the person
on whose application the order was made must procure the order to be noted in the cause
book.
(3) Where in a suit commenced by a writ of summons by an order under Rule 7 or Rule 8 a
person is to be made a defendant, the rules as to entry of appearance shall apply accordingly
to entry of appearance by him, subject, in the case of a person to be made a defendant by an
order under Rule 8, to the modification that the time limited for appearing shall begin with
the date on which the order is served on him under paragraph (4) of Rule 8 or, if the order is
not required to be served on him, with the date on which the order is noted in the cause book.
(4) Where in a suit commenced by a writ of summons by an order under Rule 7 or Rule 8 a
person is to be added as a party or is to be made a party in substitution for some other party,
that person shall not become a party until -
(a) where the order is made under Rule 7, the writ has been amended in relation to
him under this rule and, if he is a defendant, has been served on him, or
(b) where the order is made under Rule 8, the order has been served on him under
paragraph (4) of Rule 8 or, if the order is not required to be served on him, the order
has been noted in the cause book;
and where by virtue of the foregoing provision a person becomes a party in substitution for
some other party, all things done in the course of the proceedings before the making of the
order shall have effect in relation to the new party as they had in relation to the old, except
that entry of appearance by the old party shall not dispense with entry of appearance by the
new.
(5) Where in a suit commenced by an originating summons under section 14 of the Act by an
order made under Rule 7 or Rule 8 a person is to be made a defendant, to be added as a party
or to be made a party in substitution for some other party, then, unless the District Court
directs otherwise, that person shall be served with a copy of the order and with a copy of the
originating summons and with a summons in Form No. 11 of Appendix A requiring his
attendance before the Court on a date and at a time specified in the summons.
FAILURE TO PROCEED AFTER DEATH OF PARTY (O.12, r.10)
10. (1) Where after the death of a plaintiff or defendant in any suit the cause of action
survives but no order under Rule 8 is made substituting as plaintiff any person in whom the
cause of action vests or, as the case may be, as defendant, the personal representatives of the
deceased defendant, the defendant or, as the case may be, those representatives may apply to
the Court in which the suit is pending for all order that, unless the suit is proceeded with
within such time as may be specified in the order, the suit shall be struck out as against the
plaintiff or defendant, as the case may be, who has died; but where it is the plaintiff who has
died, the Court shall not make an order under this rule unless satisfied that due notice of the
application has been given to the personal representatives, if any, of the deceased plaintiff
and to any other interested persons who, in the opinion of the Court, should be notified.
(2) Where in any suit a counterclaim is made by a defendant, this rule shall apply in relation
to the counterclaim as if the counterclaim were a separate suit and as if the defendant making
the counterclaim were the plaintiff and the person against whom it is made a defendant.
SUITS FOR POSSESSION OF LAND (O.12, r.11)
11. (1) Without prejudice to Rule 7, a Court may at any stage of the proceedings in a suit
therein for possession of land order any person not a party to the suit who is in possession of
the land, whether in actual possession or by a tenant, to be added as a defendant.
(2) An application by any person for an order under this rule may be made ex parte,
supported by an affidavit showing that he is in possession of the land in question and, if by a
tenant, naming him.
(3) A person added as a defendant by an order under this rule must serve a copy of the order
on the plaintiff and must enter an appearance in the suit within such period, if any, as may be
specified in the order or, if no period is so specified, within 7 days after the making of the
order, and the rules as to entry of appearance shall apply accordingly to entry of appearance
by him.
RELATOR SUITS (O.12, r.12)
12. Before the name of any person is used in any suit as a relator, that person must give a
written authorisation so to use his name to his barrister and solicitor or pleader and the
authorisation must be filed in the registry.
REPRESENTATIVE PROCEEDINGS (O.12, r.13)
13. (1) Where numerous persons have the same interest in any suit not being such a suit as is
mentioned in Rule 14, the suit may be commenced, and, unless the Court in which it is
commenced otherwise orders, continued, by or against any one or more of them as
representing all or as representing all except one or more of them.
(2) At any stage of a suit under this Rule the Court may, on the application of the plaintiff,
and on such terms, if any, as it thinks fit, appoint any one or more of the defendants or other
persons as representing whom the defendants are sued to represent all, or all except one or
more, of those persons in the suit; and where, in exercise of the power conferred by this
paragraph, the Court appoints a person not named as a defendant, it shall make an order under
Rule 7 adding that person as a defendant.
(3) A judgment or order given in a suit under this Rule shall be binding on all the persons as
representing whom the plaintiffs sue or, as the case may be, the defendants are sued, but shall
not be enforced against any person not a party to the suit except with the leave of the Court.
(4) An application for the grant of leave under the last preceding paragraph must be made by
summons which must be served personally on the person against whom it is sought to enforce
the judgment or order.
(5) Notwithstanding that a judgment or order to which any such application relates is binding
on the person against whom the application is made, that person may dispute liability to have
the judgment or order enforced against him on the ground that by reason of facts and matters
particular to his case he is entitled to be exempted from such liability.
(6) The Court hearing an application for the grant of leave under paragraph (3) may order the
question whether the judgment or order is enforceable against the person against whom the
application is made to be tried and determined in any manner in which any issue or question
in a suit may be tried and determined.
REPRESENTATION OF INTERESTED PERSONS WHO CANNOT BE
ASCERTAINED, ETC. (O.12, r.14)
14. (1) In any suit concerning -
(a) the administration of the estate of a deceased person,
(b) property subject to a trust, or
(c) the construction of a written instrument, including a statute,
the Court in which the suit is pending, if satisfied that it is expedient so to do, and that one or
more of the conditions specified in the next following paragraph are satisfied, may appoint
one or more persons to represent any person, including an unborn person, or class who is or
may be interested, whether presently or for any future, contingent or unascertained interest, in
or affected by the suit.
(2) The conditions for the exercise of the power conferred by the last preceding paragraph are
as follows -
(a) that the person, the class or some member of the class, cannot be ascertained or
cannot readily be ascertained;
(b) that the person, class or some member of the class, though ascertained, cannot be
found;
(c) that, though the person or the class and the members thereof can be ascertained
and found, it appears to the Court expedient, regard being had to all the
circumstances, including the amount at stake and the degree of difficulty of the point
to be determined, to exercise the power for the purpose of saving expense.
(3) Where in any suit to which paragraph (1) applies, the Court exercises the power conferred
by that paragraph, a judgment or order of the Court given or made when the person or
persons appointed in exercise of that power are before the Court shall be binding on the
person or class represented by the person or persons so appointed.
(4) Where, in any such suit, a compromise is proposed and some of the persons who are
interested in, or who may be affected by, the compromise are not parties to the suit, including
unborn or unascertained persons, but -
(a) there is some other person in the same interest before the Court who assents to the
compromise or on whose behalf the Court sanctions the compromise, or
(b) the absent persons are represented by a person appointed under paragraph (1) who
so assents,
the Court, if satisfied that the compromise will be for the benefit of the absent persons and
that it is expedient to exercise this power, may approve the compromise and order that it shall
be binding on the absent persons, and they shall be bound accordingly except where the order
has been obtained by fraud or non-disclosure of material facts.
PRESENTATION OF BENEFICIARIES BY TRUSTEES, ETC. (O.12, r.15)
15. (1) Any suit including a suit to enforce a security by foreclosure or otherwise, may be
brought by or against trustees, executors or administrators in their capacity as such without
joining any of the persons having a beneficial interest in the trust or estate, as the case may
be; and any judgment or order given or made in that suit shall be binding on those persons
unless a Court in the same or another suit otherwise orders on the ground that the trustees,
executors or administrators, as the case may be, could not or did not in fact represent the
interests of those persons in the first-mentioned suit.
(2) The last preceding paragraph is without prejudice to the power of the Court to order any
person having such an interest as aforesaid to be made a party to the suit or to make an order
under Rule 14.
(3) Where the first-mentioned suit in paragraph (1) was heard and determined by the Supreme
Court, the District Court shall, notwithstanding the provisions of that paragraph, not have
power in any suit therein to make an order at variance with the judgment or order of the
Supreme Court.
REPRESENTATION OF DECEASED PERSON INTERESTED IN PROCEEDINGS
(O.12, r.16)
16. (1) Where in any suit it appears to the Court in which that suit is pending that deceased
person was interested in the matter in question in the suit and that there is no personal
representative of the deceased person, the Court may, on the application of any party to the
suit, proceed in the absence of a person representing the estate of the deceased person or may
by order appoint a person to represent that estate for the purposes of the suit; and any such
order, and any judgment or order subsequently given or made in the suit, shall bind the estate
of the deceased person to the same extent as it would have been bound had a personal
representative of that person been a party to the proceedings.
(2) Before making an order under this rule, the Court may require notice of the application
for the order to be given to such, if any, of the persons having an interest in the estate as it
thinks fit.
DECLARATORY JUDGEMENT (O.12, r.17)
17. No suit shall be open to objection on the ground that a merely declaratory judgment or
order is sought thereby, and the Court may make binding declarations of right whether or not
any consequential relief is or could be claimed.
CONDUCT OF PROCEEDINGS (O.12, r.18)
18. A Court may give the conduct of any suit therein to such party as it thinks fit.
______
ORDER 13
THIRD PARTY AND SIMILAR PROCEEDINGS
THIRD PARTY NOTICE (O.13, r.1)
1. (1) Where in any suit commenced by a writ of summons a defendant who has entered an
appearance -
(a) claims against a person not already a party to the suit any contribution or
indemnity;
(b) claims against such a person any relief or remedy relating to or connected with the
original subject-matter of the suit and substantially the same as some relief or remedy
claimed by the plaintiff; or
(c) requires that any question or issue relating to or connected with the original
subject-matter of the suit should be determined not only as between the plaintiff and
the defendant but also as between either or both of them and a person not already a
party to the suit;
then the defendant may issue a notice in Form No. 12 or Form No. 13 of Appendix A,
whichever is appropriate, in this Order referred to as a third party notice, containing a
statement of the nature of the claim made against him and, as the case may be, either of the
nature and ground of the claim made by him or of the question or issue required to be
determined.
(2) A third party notice may not be issued without the leave of the Court unless it is issued by
the defendant before he serves his defence on the plaintiff.
(3) Where a third party notice is served on the person against whom it is issued, he shall as
from the time of service be a party to the suit, in this Order referred to as a third party, with
the same rights in respect of his defence against any claim made against him in the notice and
otherwise as if he had been duly sued in the ordinary way by the defendant by whom the
notice is issued.
APPLICATION FOR LEAVE TO ISSUE THIRD PARTY NOTICE (O.13, r.2)
2. Application for leave to issue a third party notice in a suit commenced by a writ of
summons may be made ex parte but the Court may direct a summons for leave to be issued.
The application must be supported by an affidavit stating -
(a) the nature of the claim made by the plaintiff in the suit;
(b) the stage which proceedings in the suit have reached;
(c) the nature of the claim made by the applicant or particulars of the question issued
required to be determined, as the case may be, and the facts on which the proposed
third party notice is based; and
(d) the name and address of the person against whom the third party notice is to be
issued.
ISSUE AND SERVICE OF, AND ENTRY OF APPEARANCE TO, THIRD PARTY
NOTICE (O.13, r.3)
3. (1) The order granting leave to issue a third party notice may contain directions as to the
period within which the notice is to be issued.
(2) There must be served with every third party notice a copy of the writ of summons by
which the suit was commenced and of the pleadings, if any, served in the suit.
(3) Subject to the foregoing provisions of this rule, the following provisions of these Rules,
namely, paragraphs (2) and (4) of Rule 7 of Order 5, Order 8 (except paragraph (4) of Rule
1), Order 9, Order 10 and Rule 4 of Order 48, shall apply in relation to a third party notice
and to the proceedings begun thereby as if -
(a) the third party notice were a writ of summons and the proceedings begun thereby a
suit; and
(b) the defendant issuing the third party notice were a plaintiff and the person against
whom it is issued a defendant in that suit.
THIRD PARTY DIRECTIONS (O.13, r.4)
4. (1) If the third party enters an appearance, the defendant who issued the third party notice
must, by summons to be served on all the other parties to the suit, apply to the Court for
directions.
(2) If no summons is served on the third party under the last preceding paragraph, the third
party may, not earlier than 7 days after entering an appearance, by summons to be served on
all the other parties to the suit, apply to the Court for directions or for an order to set aside the
third party notice.
(3) On an application for directions under this rule the Court may -
(a) if the liability of the third party to the defendant who issued the third party notice
is established on the hearing, order such judgment as the nature of the case may
require to be entered against the third party in favour of the defendant;
(b) order any claim, question or issue stated in the third party notice to be tried in such
manner as the Court may direct; or
(c) dismiss the application and terminate the proceedings on the third party notice;
and may do so either before or after any judgment in the suit has been signed by the
plaintiff against the defendant.
(4) On an application for directions under this rule the Court may give the third party leave to
defend the suit, either alone or jointly with any defendant, upon such terms as may be just, or
to appear at the trial and to take such part therein as may be just, and generally may make
such orders and give such directions as appear to the Court proper for having the rights and
liabilities of the parties most conveniently determined and enforced and as to the extent to
which the third party is to be bound by any judgment or decision in the suit.
(5) Any order made or direction given under this rule may be varied or rescinded by the
Court at any time.
DEFAULT OF THIRD PARTY, ETC. (O.13, r.5)
5. (1) If a third party does not enter an appearance or, having been ordered to serve a defence,
fails to do so -
(a) he shall be deemed to admit any claim stated in the third party notice and shall be
bound by any judgment, including, judgment by consent, or decision in the suit in so
far as it is relevant to any claim, question or issue stated in that notice; and
(b) the defendant by whom the third party notice was issued may, if judgment in
default is given against him in the suit, at any time after satisfaction of that judgment
and, with the leave of the Court, before satisfaction thereof, enter judgment against
the third party in respect of any contribution or indemnity claimed in the notice, and,
with the leave of the Court, in respect of any other relief or remedy claimed therein.
(2) If a third, party or the defendant by whom a third party notice was issued makes default in
serving any, pleading which he is ordered to serve, the Court may, on the application by
summons of that defendant or the third party, as the case may be, order such judgment to be
entered for the applicant as he is entitled to on the pleadings or may make such other order as
may appear to the Court necessary to do justice between the parties.
(3) The Court may at any time set aside or vary a judgement entered under sub-paragraph (b)
of paragraph (1) or under the last preceding paragraph on such terms, if any, as it thinks just.
SETTING ASIDE THIRD PARTY PROCEEDINGS (O.13, r.6)
6. Proceedings on a third party notice may, at any stage of the suit, be set aside by the Court.
JOINDER OF THIRD PARTY IN SUIT COMMENCED UNDER SECTION 14 OF
THE ACT (O.13, r.7)
7. (1) Where a suit has been commenced under section 14 of the Act and the defendant claims
against any person not already a party to the suit any contribution or indemnity, he may at the
time set for hearing the suit apply to the District Court for leave to joint such person as a third
party to the suit.
(2) No summons, notice or affidavit in support of the application need be filed, but the Court
may require the defendant to state on oath the nature of his claim before it grants leave to join
the person as a third party.
(3) Where under this rule leave is given to a defendant to joint any person as a third party, the
Court shall set a new date and time for hearing the suit and the defendant shall cause a notice
in Form No. 14 of Appendix A to be served on such person requiring him to attend before the
Court on the date and at the time specified therein.
(4) At the hearing of the suit the District Court may hear and determine the plaintiff's claim
against the defendant and the defendant's claim against the third party either separately or
together as it thinks most expedient in the interests of justice.
(5) Leave shall not be granted under this rule where the person whom the defendant seeks to
joint as a third party is not a natural person normally resident in Nauru but, where the Court is
satisfied that, if the person sought to be joined had been a natural person normally resident in
Nauru, it would have been proper to grant leave, it shall stay the proceedings and direct that
the suit be recommenced by a writ of summons.
JUDGEMENT BETWEEN DEFENDANT AND THIRD PARTY (O.13, r.8)
8. (1) Where in any suit a defendant has issued a third party notice under Rule 7 and such
notice has been served, the Court may at or after the trial of the suit or, if the suit is decided
otherwise than by trial, on an application by summons or motion, order such judgement as the
nature of the case may require to be entered for the defendant against the third party or for the
third party against the defendant.
(2) Where in a suit judgement is given against a defendant and judgement is given for the
defendant against a third party, execution shall not issue against the third party without the
leave of the Court until the judgment against the defendant has been satisfied.
CLAIMS AND ISSUES BETWEEN DEFENDANT AND ANOTHER PARTY (O.13,
r.9)
9. (1) Where in any suit a defendant who has entered an appearance -
(a) claims against a person who is already a party to the suit any contribution or
indemnity;
(b) claims against such a person any relief or remedy relating to or connected with the
original subject-matter of the suit and substantially the same as some relief or remedy
claimed by the plaintiff; or
(c) requires that any question or issue relating to or connected with the original
subject-matter of the suit should be determined not only as between the plaintiff and
himself but also as between either or both of them and some other person who is
already a party to the suit;
then, subject to the next following paragraph, the defendant may, without leave, issue and
serve on that person a notice containing a statement of the nature and grounds of his claim or,
as the case may be, of the question or issue required to be determined.
(2) Where a defendant makes such a claim as is mentioned in the last preceding paragraph
and that claim could be made by him by counterclaim in the suit, that paragraph shall not
apply in relation to the claim.
(3) No appearance to such a notice shall be necessary if the person on whom it is served has
entered an appearance in the suit or is a plaintiff therein, and the same procedure shall be
adopted for the determination between the defendant by whom, and the person on whom,
such a notice is served of the claim, question or issue stated in the notice as would be
appropriate under this Order if the person served with the notice were a third party and,
where he has entered an appearance in the suit or is a plaintiff, had entered an appearance to
the notice.
(4) Paragraph (2) of Rule 4 shall have effect in relation to proceedings on a notice issued
under this rule as if for the words "7 days after entering an appearance" there were substituted
the words "14 day after service of the notice on him."
(5) Where in a suit commenced under section 14 of the Act a defendant claims any
contribution or indemnity against a person who is already a party, not being a claim which
could be made by counterclaim in the suit, he may state that claim at the commencement of
the hearing of the suit, or, with the leave of the Court, at any later stage therein, and, if he
does so, such claim shall be determined by the Court at the same time as it determines the
issues to be determined in the suit.
CLAIMS BY THIRD AND SUBSEQUENT PARTIES (O.13, r.10)
10. (1) Where a defendant has served a third party notice or a notice under Rule 7 and the
third party makes such a claim or requirement as is mentioned in Rule 1, Rule 7 or Rules 9,
this Order shall, with the modification mentioned in the next following paragraph and any
other necessary modifications, apply as if the third party were a defendant; and similarly
where any further person to whom by virtue of this rule this Order applies as if he were a
third party makes such a claim requirement.
(2) The modification referred to in the last preceding paragraph is that the next following
paragraph shall have effect in relation to the issue of a notice under Rule 1 by a third party in
substitution for paragraph (2) of Rule 1.
(3) A third party may not issue a notice under Rule 1 without the leave of the Court unless he
issues the notice before the expiration of 14 days after the time limited appearing to the notice
issued against him.
OFFER OF CONTRIBUTION (O.13, r.11)
11. If, before the trial of a suit, a party to the suit who, either as a third party or as one of two
or more tortfeasors liable in respect of the same damage, stands to be held liable in the suit to
another party to contribute towards any debt or damages which may be recovered against that
other party in the suit, makes, without prejudice to his defence, a written offer to that other
party to contribute to a specified extent to the debt or damages, then, notwithstanding that he
reserves the right to bring the offer to the attention of the Court at the trial, the offer shall not
be brought to the attention of the Court until questions of liability and amount of debt or
damages have been decided.
COUNTERCLAIM BY DEFENDANT (O.13, r.12)
12. Where in any suit a counterclaim is made by a defendant, the preceding provisions of this
Order shall apply in relation to the counterclaim as if the subject-matter of the counterclaim
were the original subject-matter of the suit, and as if the person making the counterclaim
were the plaintiff and the person against whom it is made a defendant.
______
ORDER 14
INTERPLEADER
CLAIM TO GOODS, ETC., TAKEN IN EXECUTION (O.14, r.1)
1. (1) Any person making a claim to or in respect of any money, goods or chattels taken or
intended to be taken in execution under process of a Court, or to the proceeds or value of any
such goods or chattels, must give notice of his claim to the Director of Police and must
include in his notice a statement of his address, and that address shall be his address for
service.
(2) On receipt of a claim made under this rule the Director must forthwith give notice thereof
to the execution creditor and the execution creditor must, within 8 days after receiving the
notice, give notice to the Director informing him whether he admits or disputes the claim. An
execution creditor who gives notice in accordance with this paragraph admitting a claim shall
only be liable to the Director for any fees and expenses incurred by the Director before
receipt of that notice.
(3) Where -
(a) the Director receives a notice from an execution creditor under the last preceding
paragraph disputing a claim, or the execution creditor fails, within the period
mentioned in that paragraph, to give the required notice, and
(b) the claim made under this rule is not withdrawn, the Director may apply to a Court
for relief under this Order.
(4) The Court to which the Director may apply under the last preceding paragraph shall be -
(a) where -
(i) the process, or any one of the process, in execution of which the money,
goods or chattels were taken was issued out of the District Court; or
(ii) the value of the money, goods or chattels claimed does not exceed three
thousand dollars, the District Court; and
(b) where all the process in execution of which the money, goods or chattels were
taken were issued out of the Supreme Court and their value exceeds three thousand
dollars, the Supreme Court.
(5) Where the Director receives a notice from an execution creditor under paragraph (2)
admitting a claim made under this rule, he shall withdraw from possession of the money,
goods or chattels claimed and may apply to the Court for relief under this Order of the
following kind, that is to say, an order restraining the bringing of proceedings against him for
or in respect of his having taken possession of that money or those goods or chattels.
MODE OF COMMENCING INTERPLEADER PROCEEDINGS (O.14, r.2)
2. (1) Where no suit is pending in which the rights of the parties can be properly decided, any
application for relief by way of interpleader shall be made by a writ of summons in Form No.
15 of Appendix A commencing a suit of interpleader.
(2) Where a suit of interpleader is commenced, the persons on whom the writ of summons, of
the notice thereof, is served must enter an appearance within the time limited on the writ but
no pleadings shall be required. At any time after the expiration of the time allowed for all the
parties to enter an appearance, the person who commenced the suit may apply by summons
for his application for relief to be heard. If he fails to make such application within 30 days of
such expiration, any other party to the suit may make the application.
(3) Where a suit is pending in which the rights of the parties can be properly decided, the
application shall be made by summons in that suit.
(4) Subject to the next following paragraph, a writ of summons under this rule must be
supported by evidence that the applicant -
(a) claims no interest in the subject-matter in dispute other than for charges or costs;
(b) does not collude with any of the claimants to that subject-matter; and
(c) is willing to pay or transfer that subject-matter into court or to dispose of it as the
Court may direct.
(5) Where the applicant is the Director of Police, he shall not provide such evidence as is
referred to in the last preceding paragraph unless directed by the Court so to do.
POWERS OF COURT (O.14, r.3)
3. (1) Where on the hearing of a summons under this Order all the persons by whom adverse
claims to the subject-matter in dispute, hereafter in this Order referred to as "the claimants'',
appear, the Court may order -
(a) that any claimant be made a defendant in any suit pending with respect to the
subject-matter in dispute in substitution for or in addition to the applicant for relief
under this Order;
(b) that an issue between the claimants be stated and tried and may direct which of the
claimants is to be plaintiff and which defendant.
(2) Where -
(a) the applicant on a summons under this Order is the Director of Police;
(b) all the claimants consent or any of them so requests; or
(c) the question at issue between the claimants is a question of law and the facts are
not in dispute,
the Court may summarily determine the question at issue between the claimants and make an
order accordingly on such terms as may be just.
(3) Where a claimant, having been duly served with a summons under this Order, does not
appear on the hearing of the summons or, having appeared, fails or refuses to comply with an
order made in the proceedings, the Court may make an order declaring the claimant, and all
persons claiming under him, for ever barred from prosecuting his claim against the applicant
for such relief and all persons claiming under him, but such an order shall not affect the rights
of the claimants as between themselves.
(4) Where a defendant to a suit applies for relief under this Order in the suit, the Court may
by order stay all further proceedings in the suit.
(5) Where an application for relief is made under this Order by the Director of Police and a
claimant alleges that he is entitled, under a bill of sale or otherwise, to the goods or chattels
taken by the Director in execution of any process by way of security for debt, the Court may
order those goods or chattels or any part thereof to be sold and may direct that the proceeds of
sale be applied in such manner and on such terms as may be just and as may be specified in
the order.
(6) Subject to the preceding provisions of this Order, the Court may in, or for the purposes of,
any interpleader proceedings make such order as to costs or any other matter as it thinks just.
DISCOVERY (O.14, r.4)
4. Orders 21 and 23 shall, with the necessary modifications, apply in relation to an
interpleader issue as they apply in relation to any other cause or matter.
TRIAL OF INTERPLEADER ISSUE (O.14, r.5)
5. (1) Order 30 shall, with the necessary modifications, apply to the trial of an interpleader
issue as it applies to the trial of a suit.
(2) The Court by which an interpleader issue is tried may give such judgment or make such
order as finally to dispose of all questions arising in the interpleader proceedings.
_____
ORDER 15
PLEADINGS
SERVICE OF STATEMENT OF CLAIM (O.15, r.1)
1. Unless the Court gives leave to the contrary or a statement of claim is indorsed on the writ,
the plaintiff must serve a statement of claim, or cause a statement of claim to be served, on
the defendant or, if there are two or more defendants, on each defendant, and the statement of
claim must be served either when the writ, or notice of the writ, is served on that defendant or
at any time after service of the writ or notice but before the expiration of 14 days after that
defendant enters an appearance.
SERVICE OF DEFENCE (O.15, r.2)
2. A defendant who enters an appearance in, and intends to defend, a suit must, unless the
Court gives leave to the contrary, serve a defence on the plaintiff before the expiration of 14
days after the time limited for appearing or after the statement of claim is served on film,
whichever is the later.
SERVICE OF REPLY AND DEFENCE TO COUNTERCLAIM (O.15, r.3)
3. (1) A plaintiff on whom a defendant serves a defence must serve a reply on that defendant
if it is needed for compliance with Rule 8; and if no reply is served, paragraph (1) of Rule 14
will apply.
(2) A plaintiff on whom a defendant serves a counterclaim must, if he intends to defend it,
serve on that defendant a defence to the counterclaim.
(3) Where a plaintiff serves both a reply and a defence to a counterclaim on any defendant, he
must include them in the same document.
(4) A reply to any defence must be served by the plaintiff before the expiration of 14 days
after the service on him of that defence, and a defence to a counterclaim must be served by
the plaintiff before the expiration of 14 days after the service on him of the counterclaim to
which it relates.
PLEADINGS SUBSEQUENT TO REPLY (O.15, r.4)
4. No pleading subsequent to a reply or a defence to a counterclaim shall be served except
with the leave of the Court in which the suit is pending.
SERVICE OF PLEADINGS DURING VACATION (O.15, r.5)
5. Pleadings shall not be served during a vacation of the Court in which the proceedings are
pending except with the leave of that Court or with the consent of all the parties to the action.
PLEADINGS: FORMAL REQUIREMENT (O.15, r.6)
6. (1) Every pleading in a suit must bear on its face -
(a) the year in which the writ of summons in the suit was issued and the number of the
suit;
(b) the title of the suit;
(c) the Court in which the suit is pending;
(d) the description of the pleading; and
(e) the date on which it was served.
(2) Every pleading must, if necessary, be divided into paragraphs numbered consecutively,
each allegation being so far as convenient contained in a separate paragraph.
(3) Dates, sums and other numbers must be expressed in a pleading in figures and not in
words.
(4) Every pleading of a party must be indorsed -
(a) where the party sues or defends in person, with his name and address;
(b) in any other case, with the name or firm and business address of the barrister and
solicitor or pleader by whom it was served and also, if the, barrister and solicitor or
pleader is the agent of another, the name or firm and business address of his principal.
(5) Every pleading of a party must be signed by the party's barrister and solicitor or pleader or
by the party, if he sues or defends in person.
FACTS, NOT EVIDENCE, TO BE PLEADED (O.15, r.7)
7. (1) Subject to the provisions of this Rule and Rules 10, 11 and 12, every pleading must
contain, and contain only, a statement in a summary form of the material facts on which the
party pleading relies for his claim or defence; as the case may be, but not the evidence by
which those facts are to be proved, and the statement must be as brief as the nature of the case
admits.
(2) Without prejudice to the last preceding paragraph, the effect of any document or the
purport of any conversation referred to in the pleading must, if material, be briefly stated, but
the precise words of the document or conversation shall not be stated, except in so far as
those words are themselves material.
(3) A party need not plead any fact if it is presumed by law to be true or the burden of
disproving it lies on the other party, unless the other party has specifically denied it in his
pleading.
(4) A statement that a thing has been done or that an event has occurred, being a thing or
event the doing or occurrence of which, as the case may be, constitutes a condition precedent
necessary for the case of a party is to be implied in his pleading.
MATTERS WHICH MUST BE SPECIFICALLY PLEADED (O.15, r.8)
8. (1) A party must in any pleading subsequent to a statement of claim, plead specifically any
matter, for example, performance, release, any relevant statute of limitation, fraud or any fact
showing illegality -
(a) which he alleges makes any claim or defence of the opposite party not
maintainable;
(b) which, if not specifically pleaded, might take the opposite party by surprise; or
(c) which raises issues of fact not arising out of the preceding pleading.
(2) Without prejudice to the last preceding paragraph, a defendant to a suit for the recovery of
land must plead specifically every ground of defence on which he relies, and a plea that he is
in possession of the land by himself or his tenant is not sufficient.
MATTER MAY BE PLEADED WHENEVER ARISING (O.15, r.9)
9. Subject to paragraph (1) of Rule 7, Rule 10 and paragraph (2) of Rule 15, a party may in a
party pleading plead any matter which has arisen at any time, whether before or since the
issue of the writ.
DEPARTURE (O.15, r.10)
10. A party shall not in any pleading make an allegation of fact, or raise any new ground or
claim, inconsistent with a previous pleading of his.
(2) The last preceding paragraph shall not be taken as prejudicing the right of a party to
amend, or apply for leave to amend, his previous pleading so as to plead the allegations or
claims in the alternative.
POINTS OF LAW MAY BE PLEADED (O.15, r.11)
11. A party may by his pleading raise any point of law.
PARTICULARS OF PLEADING (O.15, r.12)
12. (1) Subject to the next following paragraph, every pleading must contain the necessary
particulars of any claim, defence or other matter pleaded including, without prejudice to the
generality of the foregoing words -
(a) particulars of any misrepresentation, fraud, breach of trust, wilful default or undue
influence on which the party pleading relies; and
(b) where a party pleading alleges any condition of the mind of any person, whether
any disorder or disability of mind or any malice, fraudulent intention or other
condition of mind except knowledge, particulars of the facts on which the party relies.
(2) Where it is necessary to give particulars of debt, expenses or damages and those
particulars exceed one hundred words, a figure counting as a word, they must be set out in a
separate document referred to in the pleading and the pleading must state whether the
document has already been served and, if so, when, or is to be served with the pleading.
(3) The Court may order a party to serve on any other party particulars of any claim, defence
or other matter stated in his pleading, or in any affidavit of his ordered to stand as a pleading,
or a statement of the nature of the case on which he relies, and the order may be made or,
such terms as the Court thinks just.
(4) Where a party alleges as a fact that a person had knowledge or notice of fact, matter or
thing then, without prejudice to the generality of the last preceding paragraph, the Court may,
on such terms as it thinks just, order that party to serve on any other party -
(a) where he alleges knowledge, particulars of the facts on which he relies; and
(b) where he alleges notice, particulars of the notice.
(5) An order under this rule shall not be made before service of the defence unless, in the
opinion of the Court, the order is necessary or desirable to enable the defendant to plead or
for some other special reason.
(6) Where the applicant for an order under this rule did not apply by letter for the particular;
he requires, the Court may refuse to make the order unless of opinion that there were
sufficient reasons for an application by letter not having been made.
ADMISSIONS AND DENIALS (O.15, r.13)
13. (1) Subject to paragraph (4), any allegation of fact made by a party in his pleading is
deemed to be admitted by the opposite party unless it is traversed by that party in his pleading
or a joinder of issue under Rule 14 operates as a denial of it.
(2) A traverse maybe made either by a denial or by a statement of non-admission and either
expressly or by necessary implication.
(3) subject to the next following paragraph, every allegation of fact made in a statement of
claim or counterclaim which the party on whom it is served does not intend to admit must be
specifically traversed by him in his defence or defence to counterclaim, as the case may be;
and a general denial of such allegations, or a general statement of non-admission of them, is
not a sufficient traverse of them.
(4) Any allegation that a party has suffered damage and any allegation as to the amount of
damages is deemed to be traversed unless specifically admitted.
DENIAL BY JOINDER OF ISSUE (O.15, r.14)
14. (1) If there is no reply to a defence, there is an implied joinder of issue on that defence.
(2) Subject to the next following paragraph -
(a) there is at the close of pleadings an implied joinder of issue on the pleading last
served; and
(b) a party may in his pleading expressly join issue on the next preceding pleading.
(3) There can be no joinder of issue, implied or express, on a statement of claim or
counterclaim.
(4) A joinder of issue operates as a denial of every material allegation of fact made in the
pleading on which there is an implied or express joinder of issue unless, in the case of an
express joinder of issue, any such allegation is excepted from the joinder and is stated to be
admitted, in which case the express joinder of issue operates as a denial of every other such
allegation.
STATEMENT OF CLAIM (O.15, r.15)
15. (1) A statement of claim must state specifically the relief or remedy which the plaintiff
claims; but costs need not be specifically claimed.
(2) A statement of claim must not contain any allegation or claim in respect of cause of action
unless that cause of action is mentioned in the writ of summons or arises from facts which are
the same as, or include or form part of, facts giving rise to a cause of action so mentioned;
but, subject to that, a plaintiff may in his statement of claim alter, modify or extend any claim
made by him in the indorsement of the writ without amending the indorsement.
(3) Every statement of claim must bear on its face a statement of the date on which the writ of
summons in the suit was issued.
DEFENCE OF TENDER (O.15, r.16)
16. Where in any suit a defence of tender before commencement of the suit is pleaded the
defendant must pay into court in accordance with Order 19 the amount alleged to have been
tendered, and the tender shall not be available as a defence unless and until payment into
court has been made.
DEFENCE OF SET-OFF (O.15, r.17)
17. Where a claim by a defendant to a sum of money, whether of an ascertained amount or
not, is relied on as a defence to the whole or part of a claim made by the plaintiff, it may be
included in the defence and set-off against the plaintiff's claim, whether or not it is also added
as a counterclaim.
COUNTERCLAIM AND DEFENCE TO COUNTERCLAIM (O.15, r.18)
18. Without prejudice to the general application of this Order to a counterclaim and defence
to counterclaim, or to any provision thereof which applies to either of those pleadings
specifically, -
(a) paragraph (1) of Rule 15 shall apply to a counterclaim as if the counterclaim were
a statement of claim and the defendant making it a plaintiff; and
(b) paragraph (2) of Rule 8, Rule 16 and Rule 17 shall, with the necessary
modifications apply to a defence to counterclaim as they apply to a defence.
STRIKING OUT PLEADINGS AND INDORSEMENTS (O.15, r.19)
19. (1) The Court in which any suit is pending may at any stage of the proceedings order to
be struck out or amended any pleading or the indorsement of any writ of summons in the suit,
or anything in any pleading or in the indorsement, on the ground that -
(a) it discloses no reasonable cause of action or defence, as the case may be;
(b) it is scandalous, frivolous or vexatious;
(c) it may prejudice, embarrass or delay the fair trial of the suit; or
(d) it is otherwise an abuse of the process of the Court;
and may order the suit to be stayed or dismissed or judgment to be entered accordingly, as the
case may be.
(2) No evidence shall be admissible on an application under sub-paragraph (a) of the last
preceding paragraph.
CLOSE OF PLEADINGS (O.15, r.20)
20. (1) The pleadings in a suit are deemed to be closed -
(a) at the expiration of 14 days after service of the reply or, if there is no reply but
only a defence to counterclaim, after service of the defence to counterclaim; or
(b) if neither a reply nor a defence to counterclaim is served, at the expiration of 14
days after service of the defence.
(2) The pleadings in a suit are deemed to be closed at the time provided by the last preceding
paragraph notwithstanding that any request or order for particulars has been made but has not
been complied with at that time.
TRIAL WITHOUT PLEADINGS (O.15, r.21)
21. (1) Where in a suit to which this Rule applies any defendant has entered an appearance in
the suit, the plaintiff or that defendant may apply to the Court by summons for an order that
the suit shall be tried without pleadings or further pleadings, as the case may be.
(2) If, on the hearing of an application under this Rule, the Court is satisfied that the issues in
dispute between the parties can be defined without pleadings or further pleadings, or that for
any other reason the suit can properly be tried without pleadings or further pleadings, as the
case may be, the Court shall order the suit to be so tried, and may direct the parties to prepare
a statement of the issues in dispute or, if the parties are unable to agree such a statement, may
settle the statement itself.
(3) Where the Court makes an order under the last preceding paragraph, it shall, and where it
dismisses an application for such an order, it may, give such directions as to the further
conduct of the suit as may be appropriate.
SAVING FOR DEFENCE UNDER THE MERCHANT SHIPPING ACTS, 1894 TO
1965, OF ENGLAND (APPLIED) (O.15, r.22)
22. Nothing in Rules 2 and 35 to 38 of Order 48 shall be taken as limiting the right of any
shipowner or other person to rely by way of defence on any provision of the Merchant
Shipping Acts, 1894 to 1965, or England in their application to Nauru which limits the
amount of his liability in connection with a ship or other property.
PLEADINGS IN SUITS WHERE A PARTY IS NOT REPRESENTED (O.15, r.23)
23. (1) Where in any suit commenced by a writ of summons a defendant is not represented by
a barrister and solicitor or pleader, he may apply in his memorandum of appearance for an
appointment to state his defence verbally -
(a) where the suit is in the Supreme Court, to the Registrar, and
(b) Where the suit is in the District Court, to the resident magistrate,
and for his defence to be recorded in writing by the Registrar or the resident magistrate, as the
case may be.
(2) Where a defendant states his defence verbally under the preceding paragraph, the
Registrar or the resident magistrate shall record it in writing and, where the defendant does
not admit any allegation of fact made in the statement of claim, shall record that it is denied,
wholly or in part as the case may be. Three typed copies of the defence, indorsed with a note
of the fact that the defence was recorded by the Registrar or the resident magistrate under the
provisions of this rule, shall as soon as conveniently possible thereafter be supplied to the
defendant by the Registrar or the resident magistrate and the defendant shall be informed of
the provisions of Rule 2.
(3) A defence recorded by the Registrar or the resident magistrate under this rule may include
a set-off but the registrar or resident magistrate shall not prepare a counterclaim.
(4) A defence recorded by the Registrar or the resident magistrate shall be signed and dated
by him and shall remain on the case file of the suit in the records of the Court.
(5) Where in any suit commenced by a writ of summons a plaintiff who is not represented by
a barrister and solicitor or pleader is served with a counterclaim, he may within three days of
such service apply verbally or in writing at the registry of the Court in which the suit has
been commenced for an appointment to state his defence to the counterclaim verbally to the
Registrar or the resident magistrate, as the case may be, and for his defence to be recorded in
writing by the Registrar or the resident magistrate.
(6) The provisions of paragraphs (2), (3) and (4) with necessary modifications shall apply to a
defence to a counterclaim in respect of which application is made by the plaintiff under the
last preceding paragraph.
(7) Where an application for an appointment to state verbally a defence or a defence to a
counterclaim is not made within the time specified in this rule, leave to apply out of time may
be granted by the Registrar or the resident magistrate, as the case may be, if he thinks fit,
upon written application filed in the registry.
NO PLEADINGS IN SUITS COMMENCED UNDER SECTION 14 OF THE ACT
(O.15, r.24)
24. Where a suit is commenced by an originating summons under section 14 of the Act,
Rules 1 to 15 and 17 to 23 of this Order shall not apply and there shall be no pleadings in any
such suit but the originating summons shall be indorsed with a clear statement of the nature
of the plaintiff's claim.
_____
ORDER 16
DEFAULT OF PLEADINGS
DEFAULT IN SERVICE OF STATEMENT OF CLAIM (O.16, r.1)
1. Where the plaintiff is required by these Rules to serve a statement of claim on a defendant
and he fails to serve it on him, the defendant may, after the expiration of the period fixed by
or under these Rules for service of the statement of claim, apply to the Court for an order to
dismiss the suit and the Court may by order dismiss the suit or make or make such other
order on such terms as it thinks just.
DEFAULT OF DEFENCE: CLAIM FOR LIQUIDATED DEMAND (O.16, r.2)
2. (1) Where the plaintiff's claim against a defendant is for a liquidated demand only, then, if
that defendant fails to serve a defence on the plaintiff, the plaintiff may, after the expiration
of the period fixed by or under these Rules for service of the defence, enter final judgment
against that defendant for a sum not exceeding that claimed by the writ of summons in
respect of the demand and for costs, and proceed with a suit against the other defendants, if
any.
(2) Paragraph (2) of Rule 1 of Order 11 shall apply for the purposes of this Rule as it applies
for the purposes of that Rule.
DEFAULT OF DEFENCE: CLAIM FOR UNLIQUIDATED DAMAGES (O.16, r.3)
3. Where the plaintiff's claim against a defendant is for unliquidated damages only, then, if
that defendant fails to serve a defence on the plaintiff, the plaintiff may, after expiration of
the period fixed by or under these Rules for service of the defence, enter interlocutory
judgment against that defendant for damages to be assessed and costs, and proceed with the
suit against the other defendants, if any.
DEFAULT OF DEFENCE: CLAIM IN DETINUE (O.16, r.4)
4. Where the plaintiff's claim against a defendant relates to the detention of goods only, then,
if that defendant fails to serve a defence on the plaintiff, the plaintiff may, after the expiration
of the period fixed by or under these Rules for service of the defence, enter either -
(a) interlocutory judgment against that defendant for the delivery of the goods or their
value to be assessed and costs, or
(b) interlocutory judgment against that defendant for the value of the goods to be
assessed and costs,
and proceed with the suit against the other defendants, if any.
DEFAULT OF DEFENCE: CLAIM FOR POSSESSION OF LAND (O.16, r.5)
5. (1) Where the plaintiff's claim against a defendant is for possession of land only, then, if
that defendant fails to serve a defence on the plaintiff, the plaintiff may, after the expiration
of the period fixed by or under these Rules for service of the defence, and on producing a
certificate by his barrister and solicitor or pleader, or, if he sues in person, an affidavit, stating
that he is not claiming any relief in the suit of the nature specified in Rule 1 of Order 59 enter
judgment for possession of the land as against that defendant and for costs, and proceed with
the suit against the other defendants, if any.
(2) Where there is more than one defendant, judgment entered under this Rule shall not be
enforced against any defendant unless and until judgment for possession of the land has been
entered against all the defendants.
DEFAULT OF DEFENCE: MIXED CLAIMS (O.16, r.6)
6. Where the plaintiff makes against a defendant two or more of the claims mentioned in
Rules 2 to 5, and no other claim, then, if that defendant fails to serve a defence on the
plaintiff, the plaintiff may, after the expiration of the period fixed by or under these Rules for
service of the defence, enter against that defendant such judgment in respect of any such
claim as he would be entitled to enter under those rules if that were the only claim made, and
proceed with the suit against the other defendants, if any.
DEFAULT OF DEFENCE: OTHER CLAIMS (O.16, r.7)
7. (1) Where the plaintiff makes against a defendant or defendants a claim of a description
not mentioned in Rules 2 to 5, then, if the defendant or all the defendants, where there is
more than one, fails or fail to serve a defence on the plaintiff, the plaintiff may, after the
expiration of the period fixed by or under these Rules for service of the defence, apply to the
Court for judgment, and on the hearing of the application the Court shall give such judgment
as the plaintiff appears entitled to on his statement of claim.
(2) Where the plaintiff makes such a claim as is mentioned in the last preceding paragraph
against more than one defendant, then, if one of the defendants makes default as mentioned in
that paragraph, the plaintiff may -
(a) if his claim against the defendant in default is severable from his claim against the
other defendants, apply under that paragraph for judgment against that defendant, and
proceed with the suit against the other defendants; or
(b) set down the suit on motion for judgment against the defendant in default at the
time when the suit is set down for trial, or is set down on motion for judgment, against
the other defendants.
(3) An application under paragraph (1) must be by summons or motion.
DEFAULT OF DEFENCE TO COUNTERCLAIM (O.16, r.8)
8. A defendant who counterclaims against a plaintiff shall be treated for the purposes of Rules
2 to 7 as if he were a plaintiff who had made against a defendant the claim made in the
counterclaim and, accordingly, where the plaintiff or any other party against whom the
counterclaim is made fails to serve a defence to counterclaim, those rules shall apply as if the
counterclaim were a statement of claim, the defence to counterclaim were a defence and the
parties making the counterclaim and against whom it is made were plaintiffs and defendants
respectively, and as if references to the period fixed by or under these Rules for service of the
defence were references to the period so fixed for service of the defence to counterclaim.
SETTING ASIDE JUDGMENT (O.16, r.9)
9. A Court may, on such terms as it thinks just, set aside or vary any judgment in any suit
therein entered in pursuance of this Order.
______
ORDER 17
AMENDMENT
NO AMENDMENT OF WRIT OF SUMMONS, ETC., WITHOUT LEAVE (O.17, r.1)
(1) No party to a suit in any Court shall, without the leave of the Court, amend the writ of
summons, the originating summons, the memorandum of appearance or any pleadings or
other documents in that suit, save for the purpose of correcting a clerical or typographical
error.
(2) Leave to amend may be granted at any stage of the suit before judgment and maybe given
subject to such conditions as the Court thinks just as to costs or otherwise.
(3) Leave to amend may be given, if the Court thinks it just to give it, notwithstanding that
the application for leave was made after any relevant period of limitation expired.
(4) An amendment to correct the name of a party may be allowed notwithstanding that it is
alleged that the effect of the amendment will be to substitute a new party if the Court is
satisfied that the mistake sought to be corrected was a genuine mistake and was not
misleading or such as to cause any reasonable doubt as to the identity of the person intending
to sue or, as the case may be, intended to be sued.
(5) An amendment to alter the capacity in which a party sues, whether as plaintiff or as
defendant by counterclaim, may be allowed if the capacity in which, if the amendment is
made, the party will sue is one in which at the date of issue of the writ or the making of the
counterclaim, as the case may be, he might have sued.
(6) An amendment may be allowed notwithstanding that the effect of the amendment will be
to add or substitute a new cause of action if the new cause of action arises out of the same
facts or substantially the same facts as a cause of action in respect of which relief has already
been claimed in the suit by the party applying for leave to make the amendment.
APPLICATION FOR LEAVE TO AMEND (O.17, r.2)
2. A party wishing to amend his writ of summons, his memorandum of appearance or any of
his pleadings or other documents shall make application by summons for leave to do so, but a
Court may, if it thinks fit, grant such leave in the course of the trial without application, if it
thinks it just to do so.
FAILURE TO AMEND AFTER ORDER (O.17, r.3)
3. Where a Court makes an order under this Order giving any party leave to amend a writ,
pleading or other document, then, if that party does not amend the document in accordance
with the order before the expiration of the period specified for that purpose in the order or, if
no period is so specified, of a period of 14 days after the order was made, the order shall
cease to have effect, without prejudice, however, to the power of the Court to extend the
period.
MODE OF AMENDMENT OF WRIT, ETC. (O.17, r.4)
4. (1) Where the amendments authorised under any Rule of this Order to be made in a writ;
pleading or other document are so numerous or of such nature or length that to make written
alterations of the document so as to give effect to them would make it difficult or
inconvenient to read, a fresh document, amended as so authorised, must be prepared and, in
the case of a writ of summons, re-issued, but, except as aforesaid and subject to any direction
given under Rule 1, the amendments so authorised may be affected by making in writing the
necessary alterations of the document and, in the case of a writ of summons, causing it to be
re-sealed and filing a copy thereof.
(2) A writ, pleading or other document which has been amended under this Order must be
indorsed with a statement that it has been amended, specifying the date on which the
amendment was made.
AMENDMENT OF JUDGMENTS AND ORDERS (O.17, r.5)
5. Clerical and typographical mistakes in judgments or orders, or errors arising therein from
any accidental slip or omission, may at any time be corrected by the Court on application by
summons without an appeal.
______
ORDER 18
WITHDRAWAL AND DISCONTINUANCE
WITHDRAWAL OF APPEARANCE (O.18, r.1)
1. A party who has entered an appearance in a suit may withdraw the appearance at any time
with the leave of the Court.
DISCONTINUANCE OF SUIT, ETC., WITHOUT LEAVE (O.18, r.2)
2. (1) The plaintiff in a suit begun by writ of summons may, without the leave of the Court,
discontinue the suit, or withdraw any particular claim made by him therein, as against any or
all of the defendants at any time not later than 14 days after service of the defence on him or,
if there are two or more defendants, of the defence last served, by serving a notice to that
effect on the defendant concerned.
(2) A defendant may, without the leave of the Court-
(a) withdraw his defence or any part of it at any time; or
(b) discontinue a counterclaim, or withdraw any particular claim made by him therein,
as against any or all of the parties against whom it is made, at any time not later than
14 days after service on him of a defence to counterclaim or, if the counterclaim is
made against two or more parties, of the defence to counterclaim last served,
by serving a notice to that effect on the plaintiff or other party concerned.
(3) Where there are two or more defendants to a suit not all of whom serve a defence on the
plaintiff, and the period fixed by or under these Rules for service by any of those defendants
of his defence expires after the latest date on which any other defendant serves his defence,
paragraph (1) shall have effect as if the reference therein to the service of the defence last
served were a reference to the expiration of that period.
This paragraph shall apply in relation to a counterclaim as it applies in relation to a suit with
the substitution for references to a defence, to the plaintiff and to paragraph (1), of references
to a defence to the counterclaim, to the defendant and to the last preceding paragraph
respectively.
(4) If all the parties to a suit consent, the suit may be withdrawn without the leave of the
Court at any time before trial by filing in the registry of the Court a written consent to the suit
being withdrawn signed by all the parties.
DISCONTINUANCE OF SUIT, ETC., WITH LEAVE (O.18, r.3)
3. (1) Except as provided by Rule 2, a party may not discontinue a suit, whether begun by
writ of summons or otherwise, or a counterclaim, or withdraw any particular claim made by
him therein, without the leave of the Court in which the suit is pending and the Court hearing
an application for the grant of such leave may order the suit or counterclaim to be
discontinued, or any particular claim made therein to be struck out, as against any or all of the
parties against whom it is brought or made on such terms as to costs, the bringing of a
subsequent suit or otherwise as it thinks just.
(2) An application for the grant of leave under this rule may be made by summons.
EFFECT OF DISCONTINUANCE (O.18, r.4)
4. Subject to any terms imposed by the Court in granting leave under Rule 3, the fact that a
party has discontinued a suit or counterclaim or withdrawn a particular claim made by him
therein shall not be a defence to a subsequent suit for the same, or substantially the same,
cause of action.
STAY OF SUBSEQUENT SUIT UNTIL COSTS PAID (O.18, r.5)
5. (1) Where a party has discontinued a suit or counterclaim or withdrawn any particular
claim made by him therein and he is liable to pay any other party's costs of the suit or
counterclaim or the costs occasioned to any other party by the claim withdrawn, then if,
before payment of those costs, he subsequently brings a suit for the same, or substantially the
same, cause of action, the Court may order the proceedings in that suit to be stayed until
those costs are paid.
(2) An application for an order under this rule may be made by summons.
WITHDRAWAL OF SUMMONS (O.18, r.6)
6. A party who has taken out a summons in a cause or matter may not withdraw it without the
leave of the Court.
______
ORDER 19
PAYMENT INTO AND OUT OF COURT
PAYMENT INTO COURT (O.19, r.1)
1. (1) In any suit for a debt or damages any defendant may at any time after he has entered an
appearance in the suit pay into court a sum of money in satisfaction of the cause of action in
respect of which the plaintiff claims or, where two or more cause of action are joined in the
suit, a sum or sums of money in satisfaction of any or all of those causes of action.
(2) On making any payment into court under this rule, and on increasing any such payment
already made, the defendant must give notice thereof in Form No. 6 of Appendix A to the
plaintiff and every other defendant, if any; and within three days after receiving the notice the
plaintiff must send the defendant a written acknowledgement of its receipt.
(3) A defendant may, without leave, give notice of an increase in a payment under this rule
but, subject to that and without prejudice to paragraph (5), a notice of payment may not be
withdrawn or amended without the leave of the Court which may be granted on such terms as
may be just.
(4) Where two or more causes of action are joined in the suit and money is paid into court
under this rule in respect of all, or some only of, those causes of action, the notice of
payment-
(a) must state that the money is paid in respect of all those causes of action or, as the
case may be, must specify the cause or causes of action in respect of which the
payment is made; and
(b) where the defendant makes separate payments in respect of each, or any two or
more, of those causes of action, must specify the sum paid in respect of that cause or,
as the case may be, those causes of action.
(5) Where a single sum of money is paid into court under this rule in respect of two or more
causes of action, then, if it appears to the Court that the plaintiff is embarrassed by the
payment, the Court may, subject to the next following paragraph, order the defendant to
amend the notice of payment so as to specify the sum paid in respect of each cause of action.
(6) Where a cause of action under the Fatal Accidents Acts, 1846 to 1959, of England in their
application to Nauru and a cause of action under the Law Reform (Miscellaneous Provisions)
Act, 1934, of England in its application to Nauru are joined in a suit, with or without any
other cause of action, the causes of action under the said Acts shall, for the purpose of the last
preceding paragraph, be treated as one cause of action.
PAYMENT IN BY DEFENDANT WHO HAS COUNTERCLAIMED (O.19, r.2)
2. Where a defendant, who makes by counterclaim a claim against the plaintiff for a debt or
damages, pays a sum or sums of money into court under Rule 1, the notice of payment must
state, if it be the case, that in making the payment the defendant has taken into account and
intends to satisfy-
(a) the cause of action in respect of which he claims; or
(b) where two or more causes of action are joined in the counterclaim, all those causes
of action or, if not all, which of them.
ACCEPTANCE OF MONEY PAID INTO COURT (O.19, r.3)
3. (1) Where money is paid into court under Rule 1, then subject to the next following
paragraph, within 21 days after receipt of the notice of payment or, where more than one
payment has been made or the notice has been amended, within 21 days after the receipt of
the notice of the last payment or the amended notice but, in any case, before the trial or
hearing of the suit begins, the plaintiff may-
(a) where the money was paid in respect of the cause of action or all the causes of
action in respect of which he claims, accept the money in satisfaction of that cause of
action or those causes of action, as the case may be; or
(b) where the money was paid in respect of some only of the causes of action in
respect of which he claims, accept in satisfaction of any such cause or causes of action
the sum specified in respect of that cause or those causes of action in the notice of
payment,
by giving notice in Form No. 16 of Appendix A to every defendant to the suit.
(2) Where after the trial or hearing of a suit has begun-
(a) money is paid into court under Rule 1; or
(b) money in court is increased by a further payment into court under that rule,
the plaintiff may accept the money in accordance with paragraph (1) within 2 days after
receipt of the notice of payment or notice of the further payment, as the case may be, but, in
any case, before the judge begins to deliver judgment.
(3) Paragraph (5) of Rule 1 shall not apply in relation to money paid into court in a suit after
the trial or hearing of the suit has begun.
(4) On the plaintiff accepting any money paid into court all further proceedings in the suit or
in respect of the specified cause or causes of action, as the case may be, to which the
acceptance relates, both against the defendant making the payment and against any other
defendant sued jointly with or in the alternative to him, shall be stayed.
(5) Where money is paid into court by a defendant who made a counterclaim and the notice
of payment stated, in relation to any sum so paid, that in making the payment the defendant
had taken into account and satisfied the cause or causes of action, or the specified cause or
causes of action in respect of which he claimed, then, on the plaintiff accepting that sum, all
further proceedings on the counterclaim or in respect of the specified cause or causes of
action, as the case may be, against the plaintiff shall be stayed.
(6) A plaintiff who has accepted any sum paid into court shall, subject to Rules 4 and 9 and to
Rule 11 of Order 52, be entitled to receive payment of that sum in satisfaction of the cause or
causes of action to which the acceptance relates.
ORDER FOR PAYMENT OUT OF MONEY ACCEPTED REQUIRED IN CERTAIN
CASES (O.19, r.4)
4. (1) Where a plaintiff accepts any sum paid into court and that sum was paid into court-
(a) by some but not all of the defendants sued jointly or in the alternative by him;
(b) with a defence of tender before suit; or
(c) in satisfaction either of causes of action arising under the Fatal Accident Acts,
1846 to 1959, of England in their application to Nauru and the Law Reform
(Miscellaneous Provisions) Act, 1934, of England in its application to Nauru or of a
cause of action arising under the first-mentioned Acts where more than one person is
entitled to the money;
the money in court shall not be paid out except under the next following paragraph or in
pursuance of an order of the Court, and the order shall deal with the whole costs of the suit or
of the cause of action to which the payment relates, as the case may be.
(2) Where an order of the Court is required under the preceding paragraph by reason only of
sub-paragraph (a) of that paragraph, than if, either before or after accepting the money paid
into court by some only of the defendants sued jointly or in the alternative by him, the
plaintiff discontinues the suit against all other defendants and those defendants consent in
writing to the payment out of that sum, it may be paid out without an order of the Court.
(3) Where after the trial or hearing of a suit has begun a plaintiff accepts any money paid into
court and all further proceedings in the suit or in respect of the specified cause or causes of
action, as the case may be, to which the acceptance relates are stayed by virtue of paragraph
(4) of Rule 3, then, notwithstanding anything in the last preceding paragraph, the money shall
not be paid out except in pursuance of an order of the Court, and the order shall deal with the
whole costs of the suit.
MONEY REMAINING IN COURT (O.19, r.5)
5. If any money paid into court in a suit is not accepted in accordance with Rule 3, the money
remaining in court shall not be. paid out except in pursuance of an order of the Court which
may be made at any time before, at or after the trial or hearing of the suit; and where such an
order is made before the trial or hearing the money shall not be paid out except in satisfaction
of the cause or causes of action in respect of which it was paid in.
COUNTERCLAIM (O.19, r.6)
6. A plaintiff against whom a counterclaim is made and any other defendant to the
counterclaim may pay money into court in accordance with Rule 1, and that rule and Rule 3
(except paragraph (5)), 4 and 5 shall apply accordingly with the necessary modifications.
NON-DISCLOSURE OF PAYMENT INTO COURT (O.19, r.7)
7. Except in a suit to which a defence of tender before suit is pleaded, and except in a suit all
further proceedings in which are stayed by virtue of paragraph (4) of Rule 3 after the trial or
hearing has begun, the fact that money has been paid into court under the foregoing
provisions of this Order shall not be pleaded and no communication of that fact shall be made
to the Court at the trial or hearing of the suit or counterclaim or of any question or issue as to
the debt or damages until all questions of liability and of the amount of debt or damages have
been decided.
MONEY PAID INTO COURT UNDER ORDER (O.19, r.8)
8. Money paid into court under an order of the Court relating to security for costs shall not be
paid out except in pursuance of an order of the Court into which it was paid or, in the case of
money paid into court as security for the costs of an appeal, of the Court empowered to make
an order relating to payment of the costs of the appeal.
PERSON TO WHOM PAYMENT TO BE MADE (O.19, r.9)
9. (1) Money in court shall be paid out to the party entitled or, on his written authority, to his
barrister and solicitor or, if the Court so orders, to his barrister and solicitor without such
authority.
(2) This rule applies whether the money in court has been paid into court under Rule 1 or
under an order of the Court.
PAYMENT OUT: SMALL INTESTATE ESTATE (O.19, r.10)
10. Where a person entitled to money in court, or a share of such money, dies intestate and
the Court is satisfied that no grant of administration of his estate has been made and that the
assets of his estate do not exceed $500 in value, including the value of the money in court or
the share thereof, it shall order that the money or share shall be paid to the Director of Police
to be dealt with by him in accordance with section 30 of the Nauru Police Force Act 1972.
_______
ORDER 20
SECURITY FOR COSTS
SECURITY FOR COSTS OF SUITS, ETC. (O.20, r.1)
1. (1) Where, on the application of a defendant to a suit or to a counterclaim in a suit in any
Court, it appears to the Court -
(a) that the plaintiff is ordinarily resident out of Nauru;
(b) that the plaintiff, not being a plaintiff who is suing in a representative capacity, is
a nominal plaintiff who is suing for the benefit of some other person and that there is
reason to believe that he will be unable to pay the costs of the defendant if ordered to
do so;
(c) subject to the next following paragraph, that the plaintiff's address is not stated in
the writ of summons or originating summons or is incorrectly stated therein; or
(d) that the plaintiff has changed his address during the course of the proceedings with
a view to evading the consequences of the litigation,
then if, having regard to all the circumstances of the case, the Court thinks it just to do so, it
may order the plaintiff to give such security for the defendant's costs of the suit as it thinks
just.
(2) The Court shall not require a plaintiff to give security by reason only of sub-paragraph (c)
of the preceding paragraph if he satisfies the Court that the failure to state his address or the
mis-statement thereof was made innocently and without intention to deceive.
(3) The references in the preceding paragraphs to a plaintiff and a defendant shall be
construed as references to the person, howsoever described on the record, who is in the
position of plaintiff or defendant, as the case may be, in the proceeding in question, including
a proceeding on a counterclaim.
MANNER OF GIVING SECURITY (O.20, r.2)
2. Where an order is made requiring any party to give security for costs, the security shall be
given in such manner, at such time and on such terms, if any, as the Court may direct.
SAVING FOR WRITTEN LAWS (O.20, r.3)
3. This Order is without prejudice to the provisions of any written law which empowers the
Court to require security to be given for the costs of any proceedings.
_______
ORDER 21
DISCOVERY AND INSPECTION
ORDER FOR DISCOVERY (O.21, r.1.)
1. (1) Upon application by summons by any party to a suit the Court in which that suit is
pending may, after the close of the pleadings in that suit, order all or any of the
parties thereto to make available to all or any of the other parties therein a list of the
documents which are or have been in his possession, custody or power relating to any matter
in question in the suit, and may at the same time or subsequently also order him to make and
file an affidavit verifying such a list and to serve a copy thereof on all or any of the other
parties:
Provided that an application shall not be made under this section for an order for discovery to
be directed to any party unless, not less than 21 days before such application is made a
written request for such discovery has been served upon that party by or on behalf of the
applicant and that party has refused or failed to comply with such request; affidavit evidence
of the request and of refusal or failure to comply with it shall be filed in support of the
application.
(2) An order under this rule may be limited to such documents or classes of document only,
or to such only of the matters in question in the suit, as may be specified in the order.
ORDER FOR DETERMINATION OF ISSUE, ETC., BEFORE DISCOVERY (O.21,
r.2)
2. Where on an application far an order under Rule 1 it appears to the Court that any issue or
question in the suit should be determined before any discovery of documents is made by the
parties, the Court may order that that issue or question be determined first.
FORM OF LIST AND AFFIDAVIT (O.21, r.3)
3. (1) A list of documents made in compliance with an order under Rule 1 must be in Form
No. 17 of Appendix A, and must enumerate the documents in a convenient, order and as
shortly as possible but describing each of them or, in the case of bundles of documents of the
same nature, each bundle, sufficiently to enable it to be identified.
(2) If it is desired to claim that any documents are privileged from production, the claim must
be made in the list of documents with a sufficient statement of the grounds of the privilege.
(3) An affidavit made as aforesaid verifying a list of documents must be in Form No. 18 of
Appendix A.
ORDER FOR DISCOVERY OF PARTICULAR DOCUMENTS (O.21, r.4)
4. (1) The Court may at any time, on the application of any party to a suit, make an
order requiring any other party to make an affidavit stating whether any document specified
or described in the application or any class of document so specified or described is, or has at
any time been, in his possession, custody or power, and if not then in his possession, custody
or power when he parted with it and what has become of it:
Provided that an application shall not be made under this rule unless, not less than 21 days
before such application is made, a written request for the information was served upon the
other party by or on behalf of the applicant and that other party refused or failed to comply
with such request; affidavit evidence of the request and of refusal or failure to comply with it
shall be filed in support of the application.
(2) An order may be made against a party under this rule notwithstanding that he may already
have been required to make a list of documents or affidavit under Rule 1.
(3) An application for an order under this rule must be supported by an affidavit stating the
belief of the deponent that the party from whom discovery is sought under this rule has, or at
some time had, in his possession, custody or power the document, or class of document,
specified or described in the application and that it relates to one or more of the matters in
question in the suit.
INSPECTION OF DOCUMENTS REFERRED TO IN LIST (O.21, r.5)
5. (1) A party who has served a list of documents on any other party whether in accordance
with a written request to do so or in compliance with an order under Rule 1 must allow the
other party to inspect the documents referred to in the list, other than any which he objects to
produce, and to take copies thereof and, accordingly, he must when he serves the list on the
other party also serve on him a notice stating a time within 14 days after the service thereof at
which the said documents may be inspected at a place in Nauru or where the party serving the
list and all parties on whom it is served normally reside or keep their business records out of
Nauru in the same country, in that country specified in the notice.
(2) For the purpose of this rule and paragraph (2) of Rule 6, where the parties normally reside
or keep their business records in Australia or the United States of America, "country'' shall be
taken as meaning ''State" or "Territory" depending upon the circumstances.
INSPECTION OF DOCUMENTS REFERRED TO IN PLEADINGS AND
AFFIDAVITS (O.21, r.6)
6. (1) Any party to a suit shall be entitled at any time to serve a notice on any other party in
whose pleadings or affidavits reference is made to any document requiring him to produce
that document for the inspection of the party giving the notice and to permit him to take
copies thereof.
(2) The party on whom a notice is served under the last preceding paragraph must, within 14
days after service of the notice, serve on the party giving the notice a notice stating a time
within 14 days after the service thereof at which the documents, or such of them as he does
not object to produce, may be inspected at a place in Nauru or, where the party serving the
notice and all parties on whom it is served normally reside out of Nauru in the same country,
in that country specified in the notice, and stating which, if any, of the documents he objects
to produce and on what grounds.
ORDER FOR PRODUCTION FOR INSPECTION (O.21, r.7)
7. (1) If a party who is required by Rule 5 to serve such a notice as is therein mentioned or
who is served with a notice under paragraph (1) of Rule 6 -
(a) fails to serve a notice under Rule 5 or, as the case may be, paragraph (2) of Rule 6;
(b) objects to produce any document for inspection; or
(c) offers inspection at a time or place such that, in the opinion of the Court, it is
unreasonable to offer inspection then or, as the case may be, there,
then, subject to paragraph (1) of Rule 9, the Court may, on the application of the party
entitled to inspection, make an order for production of the documents in question for
inspection at such time and place, and in such manner, as it thinks fit.
(2) Without prejudice to the last preceding paragraph but subject to paragraph (1) of Rule 9
the Court may, on the application of any party to a suit, order any other party to permit the
party applying to inspect any documents in the possession, custody or power of that other
party relating to any matter in question in the suit.
(3) An application for an order under the last preceding paragraph must be supported by an
affidavit specifying or describing the documents of which inspection is sought and stating the
belief of the deponent that they are in the possession, custody or power of the other party and
that they relate to a matter in question in the suit.
ORDER FOR PRODUCTION TO COURT (O.21, r.8)
8. At any stage of the proceedings in any suit the Court may, subject to paragraph (1) of Rule
9, order any party to produce to the Court any document in his possession, custody or power
relating to any matter in question in the suit and the Court may deal with the document when
produced in such manner as it thinks fit.
PRODUCTION TO BE ORDERED ONLY IF NECESSARY, ETC. (O.21, r.9)
9. (1) No order for the production of any documents for inspection or to the Court shall be
made under any of the preceding rules unless the Court is of opinion that the order is
necessary either for disposing fairly of the suit or for saving costs.
(2) Where on an application under this Order for production of any document for inspection
or to the Court privilege from such production is claimed or objection is made to such
production on any other ground, the Court may inspect the document for the purpose of
deciding whether the claim or objection is valid.
PRODUCTION OF BUSINESS BOOKS (O.21, r.10)
10. (1) Where production of any business books for inspection is applied for under any of the
preceding rules, the Court may, instead of ordering production of the original books for
inspection, order a copy of any entries therein to be supplied and verified by an affidavit of
some person who has examined the copy with the original books.
(2) Any such affidavit shall state whether or not there are in the original book any and what
erasures, interlineations or alterations.
(3) Notwithstanding that a copy of any entries in any book has been supplied under this rule,
the Court may order production of the book from which the copy was made.
DOCUMENT DISCLOSURE OF WHICH WOULD BE INJURIOUS TO PUBLIC
INTEREST (O.21, r.11)
11. The preceding provisions of this Order shall be without prejudice to any rule of law
which authorises or requires the withholding of any document on the ground that the
disclosure of it would be injurious to the public interest.
FAILURE TO COMPLY WITH REQUIREMENTS OF DISCOVERY, ETC. (O.21,
r.12)
12. (1) If any party who is required by any of the preceding rules, or by any order made
thereunder, to make discovery of documents or to produce any documents for the purpose of
inspection or any other purpose fails to comply with any provision of that rule or with that
order, as the case may be, or if, although purporting to comply with a written request for
discovery or for the information referred to in Rule 4, any party fails to make full, proper and
accurate discovery or to provide full, proper and accurate information, as the case may be,
then, without prejudice to paragraph (1) of Rule 7, the Court may make such order as it thinks
just including, in particular, an order that the suit be dismissed or, as the case may be, an
order that the defence be struck out and judgement be entered accordingly.
(2) If any party against whom an order for discovery or production of documents is made
fails to comply with it, then, without prejudice to the last preceding paragraph, he shall be
liable to committal.
(3) Service on a party's barrister and solicitor or pleader of an order for discovery or
production of documents made against that party shall be sufficient service to found an
application for committal of the party disobeying the order, but the party may show in answer
to the application that he had no notice or knowledge of the order.
(4) A barrister and solicitor or pleader on whom such an order, made against his client is
served and who fails without reasonable excuse to give notice thereof to his client shall be
liable to committal.
REVOCATION AND VARIATION OF ORDERS (O.21, r.13)
13. Any order made under this Order, including an order made on appeal, may, on sufficient
cause being shown, be revoked or varied by a subsequent order or direction of the Court
made or given at or before the trial of the suit in connection with which the original order was
made.
THIS ORDER NOT TO APPLY TO SUITS COMMENCED UNDER SECTION 14 OF
THE ACT (O.21, r.14)
14. The preceding provisions of this Order shall not apply to suits commenced in the District
Court under section 14 of the Act.
______
ORDER 22
SUMMONS FOR DIRECTIONS
SUMMONS FOR DIRECTIONS (O.22, r.1)
1. Any party to a suit may at any time after the pleadings are closed and before the trial has
commenced take out a summons to obtain the directions of the court as to the future course of
the suit with a view to securing the just, expeditious and economical disposal thereof.
SUMMONS FOR DIRECTIONS NOT OBLIGATORY (O.22, r.2)
2. There shall be no obligation on any party to a suit to take out a summons for directions
therein and the suit may be set down for hearing without directions if no directions have been
given but, where the directions have been given, the suit shall not be set down for hearing
otherwise than after compliance or in accordance with those directions.
_______
ORDER 23
INTERROGATORIES
DISCOVERY BY INTERROGATORIES (O.23, r.1)
1. (1) A party to any suit may apply to the Court in which that suit is pending for an order –
(a) giving him leave to serve on any other party interrogatories relating to any matter
in question between the applicant and that other party in the suit; and
(b) requiring that other party to answer the interrogatories on affidavit within such
period as may be specified in the order.
(2) A copy of the proposed interrogatories must be served with the summons by which the
application for such leave is made.
(3) On the hearing of an application under this rule, the Court shall give leave as to such only
of the interrogatories as it considers necessary either for disposing fairly of the suit or for
saving costs; and in deciding whether to give leave the Court shall take into account any offer
made by the party to be interrogated to give particulars or to make admissions or to produce
documents relating to any matter in question.
(4) A proposed interrogatory which does not relate to such a matter as is mentioned in
paragraph (1) shall be disallowed notwithstanding that it might be admissible in oral cross-
examination of a witness.
INTERROGATORIES WHERE PARTY IS A BODY OF PERSONS (O.23, r.2)
2. Where a party to a suit is a body of persons, whether corporate or unincorporated, being a
body which is empowered by law to sued or be sued whether in its own name or in the name
of an officer or other person, the Court may, on the application of any other party, make an
order allowing him to serve interrogatories on such officer or member of the body as may be
specified in the order.
STATEMENT AS TO PARTY REQUIRED TO ANSWER (O.23, r.3)
3. Where interrogatories are to be served on two or more parties or are required to be
answered by an agent or servant of a party, a note at the end of the interrogatories shall state
which of the interrogatories each party or, as the case may be, an agent or servant is required
to answer, and which agent or servant.
OBJECTION TO ANSWER ON GROUND OF PRIVILEGE (O.23, r.4)
4. Where a person objects to answering any interrogatory on the ground of privilege he may
take the objection in his affidavit in answer.
INSUFFICIENT ANSWER (O.23, r.5)
5. If any person on whom interrogatories have been served answers any of them
insufficiently, the Court may make an order requiring him to make a further answer, and
either by affidavit or on oral examination as the Court may direct.
FAILURE TO COMPLY WITH ORDER (O.23, r.6)
6. (1) If a party against whom an order is made under Rule 1 or Rule 5 fails to comply with it,
the Court may make such order as it thinks just including, in particular, an order that the suit
be dismissed or, as the case may be, an order that the defence be struck out and judgment be
entered accordingly.
(2) If a party against whom an order is made under Rule 1 or Rule 5 fails to imply with it,
then, without prejudice to the last preceding paragraph, he shall be liable to committal.
(3) Service on a party's barrister and solicitor or pleader of an order to answer interrogatories
made against the party shall be sufficient service to found an application committal of the
party disobeying the order, but the party may show in answer to the application that he had
no notice or knowledge of the order.
(4) A barrister and solicitor or pleader on whom an order to answer interrogatories made
against his client is served and who fails without reasonable excuse to give notice thereof to
his client shall be liable to committal.
USE OF ANSWERS TO INTERROGATORIES AT TRIAL (O.23, r.7)
7. A party may put in evidence at the trial of a suit or of any issue therein, some only of the
answers to interrogatories, or part only of such an answer, without putting in evidence the
other answers or, as the case may be, the whole of that answer, but the Court may look at the
whole of the answers and, if of opinion that any other answer or other part of an answer is so
connected with an answer or part thereof used in evidence that the one ought not to be so
used without the other, the Court may direct that that other answer, answer or part shall be
put in evidence.
REVOCATION AND VARIATION OF ORDERS (O.23, r.8)
8. Any order made under this Order, including an order made on appeal, may, on sufficient
cause being shown, be revoked or varied by a subsequent order or direction of the Court
made or given at or before the trial of the suit in connection with which the original order was
made.
______
ORDER 24
ADMISSIONS
ADMISSION OF CASE OF OTHER PARTY (O.24, r.1)
1. Without prejudice to Rule 13 of Order 15 a party to a cause or matter may give notice, by
his pleading or otherwise in writing, that he admits the truth of the whole or any part of the
case of any other party.
NOTICE TO ADMIT FACTS (O.24, r.2)
2. (1) A party to a suit may, not later than 14 days after the cause or matter is set down for
trial, serve on any other party a notice requiring him to admit, for the purpose of that suit
only, the facts specified in the notice.
(2) An admission made in compliance with a notice under this rule shall not be used against
the party by whom it was made in any cause or matter other than the suit for the purpose of
which it was made or in favour of any person other than the person by whom the notice was
given, and the Court may at any time allow a party to amend or withdraw an admission so
made by him on such terms as may be just.
JUDGMENT ON ADMISSION OF FACTS (O.24, r.3)
3. (1) Where admissions of fact are made by a party to a suit either by his pleadings or
otherwise, any other party to the suit may apply to the Court for such judgement or order as
upon those admissions he may be entitled to, without waiting for the determination of any
other question between the parties, and the Court may give such judgment, or make such
order, on the application as it thinks just.
(2) An application for an order under this rule shall be made by motion.
ADMISSION AND PRODUCTION OF DOCUMENTS SPECIFIED IN LIST OF
DOCUMENT (O.24, r.4)
4. (1) Subject to the next following paragraph and without prejudice to the right of a party to
object to the admission in evidence of any document, a party on whom a list of documents is
served in pursuance of any provision of Order 21 shall, unless the Court otherwise orders, be
deemed to admit -
(a) that any document described in the list as an original document is such a document
and was printed, written, signed or executed as it purports respectively to have been;
and
(b) that any document described therein as a copy is a true copy.
This paragraph does not apply to a document the authenticity of which the party has denied in
his pleading.
(2) If before the expiration of 14 days after inspection of the documents specified in a list of
documents or after the time limited for inspection of those documents expire, whichever is
the later, the party on whom the list is served serves on the party whose list it is a notice
stating, in relation to any document specified therein, that he does not admit the authenticity
of that document and requires it to be proved at the trial, he shall not be deemed to make any
admission in relation to that document under the last preceding paragraph.
(3) A party to a cause or matter by whom a list of documents is served on any other party in
pursuance of any provision of Order 21 shall be deemed to have been served by that other
party with a notice requiring him to produce at the trial of the cause or matter such of the
documents specified in the list as are in his possession, custody or power.
(4) The foregoing provisions of this rule apply in relation to an affidavit made in compliance
with an order under Rule 4 of Order 21 as they apply in relation to a list of document served
in pursuance of any provision of that Order.
NOTICES TO ADMIT OR PRODUCE DOCUMENTS (O.24, r.5)
5. (1) Except where paragraph (1) of Rule 4 applies, a party to a suit may within 14 days after
the suit is set down for trial serve on any other party a notice requiring him to admit the
authenticity of the documents specified in the notice.
(2) If a party on whom a notice under the last preceding paragraph is served desires to
challenge the authenticity of any document therein specified he must, within 14 days after
service of the notice, serve on the party by whom it was given a notice stating he does not
admit the authenticity of the document and requires it to be proved at the trial.
(3) A party who fails to give a notice of non-admission in accordance with the last preceding
paragraph in relation to any document shall be deemed to have admitted the authenticity of
that document unless the Court otherwise orders.
(4) Except where paragraph (3) of Rule 4 applies, a party to a suit may serve on any other
party a notice requiring him to produce the documents specified in the notice at the trial of
the suit.
______
ORDER 25
INTERLOCUTORY INJUNCTIONS, INTERIM PRESERVATION OF PROPERTY,
ETC.
APPLICATION FOR INTERLOCUTORY INJUNCTION (O.25, r.1)
1. (1) An application for the grant of an interlocutory injunction may be made by any party to
a suit commenced by writ of summons before or after the trial of the suit, whether or not a
claim for the injunction was included in that party's writ, counterclaim or third party notice,
as the case may be.
(2) Where the applicant is the plaintiff and the case is one of urgency such application may be
made ex parte by summons but, except as aforesaid, such application must be made by inter
partes summons.
(3) The plaintiff may not make such an application before the issue of the writ of summons
by which the suit is to be commenced.
DETENTION, PRESERVATION, ETC., OF SUBJECT-MATTER OF SUIT (O.25, r.2)
2. (1) On the application of any party to a suit commenced by writ of summons the Court
may make an order for the detention, custody or preservation of any property which is the
subject-matter of the suit, or as to which any question may arise therein, or for the inspection
of any such property in the possession of a party to the suit.
(2) For the purpose of enabling any order under the last preceding paragraph be carried out
the Court may by the order authorise any person to enter upon any land or building in the
possession of any party to the suit.
(3) Where the right of any party to a specific fund is in dispute in a suit, the Court may, on
the application of a party to the suit, order the fund to be paid into court or otherwise secured.
(4) An order under this rule may be made on such terms, if any, as the Court thinks just.
(5) An application for an order under this rule must be made by summons.
(6) Unless the Court otherwise directs, an application by a defendant for such an order may
not be made before he enters an appearance.
POWER TO ORDER SAMPLES TO BE TAKEN (O.25, r.3)
3. (1) Where it considers it necessary or expedient for the purpose of obtaining full
information or evidence in any suit, the Court may, on the application of a party to the suit,
and on such terms, if any, as it thinks just, by order authorise or require any sample to be
taken of any property which is the subject-matter of the suit or of any counterclaim therein or
as to which any question may arise therein, any observation to be made on such property or
any experiment to be tried on or with such property.
(2) For the purpose of enabling any order under the last preceding paragraph to be carried out
the Court may by the order authorise any person to enter upon any land or building in the
possession of any party to the suit.
(3) Paragraphs (5) and (6) of Rule 2 shall apply in relation to an application for an order
under this rule as they apply in relation to an application for an order under that rule.
SALE OF PERISHABLE PROPERTY, ETC. (O.25, r.4)
4. (1) The Court may, on the application of any party to a suit, make an order for the sale by
such person, in such manner and on such terms, if any, as may be specified in the order of
any property, other than land, which is the subject-matter of the suit or of any counterclaim
therein or as to which any question arises therein and which is of a perishable nature or likely
to deteriorate if kept or which for any other good reason it is desirable to sell forthwith.
In this paragraph "land" includes any interest in, or right over, land.
(2) Paragraphs (5) and (6) of Rule 2 shall apply in relation to an application for an order
under this rule as they apply in relation to an application for an order under that rule.
ORDER FOR EARLY TRIAL (O.25, r.5)
5. (1) Where on the hearing of an application, made before the trial of a suit, for an injunction
or the appointment of a receiver or an order under any of Rules 2, 3 and 4 it appears to the
Court that the matter in dispute can be better dealt with by an early trial than by considering
the whole merits thereof for the purposes of the application, the Court may make an order
accordingly and may also make such order in respect of the period before trial as the justice
of the case requires.
(2) Where the Court makes an order for early trial it shall by the order determine the mode of
the trial.
RECOVERY OF PERSONAL PROPERTY SUBJECT TO LIEN, ETC. (O.25, r.6)
6. Where the plaintiff, or the defendant by way of counterclaim, claims the recovery of
specific property, other than land, and the party from whom recovery is sought does not
dispute the title of the party making the claim but claims to be entitled to retain the property
by virtue of a lien or otherwise as security for any sum of money, the Court, at any time after
the claim to be so entitled appears from the pleadings, if any, or by affidavit or otherwise to
its satisfaction, may order that the party seeking to recover the property be at liberty to pay
into court, to abide the event of the action, the amount of money in respect of which the
security is claimed and such further sum, if any, for interest and costs as the Court may direct
and that, upon such payment being made, the property claimed be given up to the party
claiming it.
DIRECTIONS (O.25, r.7)
7. Where an application is made under any of the preceding provisions of this Order, the
Court may give directions as to the further proceedings in the suit.
ALLOWANCE OF INCOME OF PROPERTY PENDING DETERMINATION OF
SUIT (O.25 r.8)
8. Where any real or personal property forms the subject-matter of any proceedings and the
Court is satisfied that it will be more than sufficient to answer all the claims thereon for
which provision ought to be made in the proceedings, the Court may at any time allow the
whole or part of the income of the property to be paid, during such period as it may direct, to
any or all of the parties who have an interest therein or may direct that any part of the
personal property be transferred or delivered to any or all of such parties.
______
ORDER 26
RECEIVERS
APPLICATION FOR APPOINTMENT OF RECEIVER (O.26, r.1)
1. (1) An application for the appointment of a receiver under section 28 of the Act shall be
made by summons.
(2) An application for an injunction ancillary or incidental to an order appointing a receiver
may be joined with the application for such order.
(3) A Court to which an application is made under the last preceding paragraph may hear that
part of the summons ex parte forthwith and may grant an injunction restraining the party
beneficially entitled to any interest in the property of which a receiver sought from assigning,
charging or otherwise dealing with that property until after the hearing of a summons for the
appointment of the receiver.
GIVING OF SECURITY BY RECEIVER (O.26, r.2)
2. (1) Where a judgment is given, or order made, directing the appointment of a receiver,
then, unless the judgment or order otherwise directs, a person shall not be appointed receiver
in accordance with the judgment or order until he has given security in accordance with this
rule.
(2) Where by virtue of the last preceding paragraph, or of any judgment or order appointing a
person named therein to be receiver, a person is required to give security in accordance with
this rule he must give security approved by the Court duly to account for what he receives as
receiver and to deal with it as the Court directs.
(3) Unless the Court otherwise directs, the security shall be by guarantee or, if the amount for
which the security is to be given does not exceed $2,000, by an undertaking.
(4) The guarantee or undertaking must be filed in the registry and it shall be kept as of record
until duly vacated.
REMUNERATION OF RECEIVER (O.26, r.3)
3. A person appointed receiver shall be allowed such proper remuneration, if any, as may be
fixed by the Court.
RECEIVER'S ACCOUNTS (O.26, r.4)
4. (1) A receiver must submit accounts to the Court at such intervals or on such dates as the
Court may direct in order that they maybe passed.
(2) Unless the Court otherwise directs, each account submitted by a receiver must be
accompanied by an affidavit verifying it.
(3) The receiver's account and affidavit, if any, must be left at the registry, and the plaintiff or
party having the conduct of the suit must thereupon obtain an appointment for the purpose of
passing such account.
(4) The passing of a receiver's account must be certified by the Registrar or, where the order
was made by the District Court, the resident magistrate.
PAYMENT OF BALANCE, ETC., BY RECEIVER (O.26, r.5)
5. The days on which a receiver must pay into court the amounts shown by his account as due
from him, or such part thereof as the court may certify as proper to be paid in by him, shall be
fixed by the Court.
DEFAULT OF RECEIVER (O.26, r.6)
6. (1) Where a receiver fails to attend for the passing of any account of his, or fails to submit
any account, make any affidavit or do any other thing which he is required to submit, make or
do, he and any or all of the parties to the cause or matter in which he was appointed may be
required to attend in chambers to show cause for the failure, and the Court may, either in
chambers or after adjournment into court, give such directions as it thinks proper including, if
necessary, directions for the discharge of the receiver and the appointment of another and the
payment of costs.
(2) Without prejudice to the last preceding paragraph, where a receiver fails to attend for the
passing of any account of his or fails to submit any account or fails to pay into court on the
date fixed by the Court any sum shown by his account as due from him, the Court may
disallow any remuneration claimed by the receiver in any subsequent account and may,
where he has failed to pay any such sum into court, charge him with interest at such rate as it
thinks fit on that sum while in his possession as receiver.
______
ORDER 27
APPLICATIONS AND PROCEEDINGS IN CHAMBERS
MODE OF MAKING APPLICATION (O.27, r.1)
1. (1) Every application in chambers must, subject to the next following paragraph, be made
by summons and every application which is properly made by summons shall, subject to the
power of the judge or magistrate, as the case may be, to adjourn it into court or to direct that
it be heard in court, be heard in chambers.
(2) On the hearing of any summons, a party may, with leave of the judge or magistrate, as the
case may be, and with the consent of any other party who will be affected by any direction or
order made thereon, make verbal application for a direction or order not sought in the
summons.
ISSUE OF SUMMONS (O.27, r.2)
2. (1) Issue of a summons takes place on its being sealed by an officer of the registry of the
Court out of which it is issued.
(2) A summons may not be amended after issue without leave of the Court.
SERVICE OF SUMMONS (O.27, r.3)
3. A summons asking only for the extension or abridgment of any period of time may be
served on the day before the day specified in the summons for the hearing thereof but, except
as aforesaid or unless the Court otherwise orders or any of these Rules otherwise provides, a
summons must be, served on every other party not less than seven clear days before the day
so specified.
ADJOURNMENT OF HEARING (O.27, r.4)
4. (1) The hearing of a summons may be adjourned from time to time, either generally or to a
particular date, as may be appropriate.
(2) If the hearing is adjourned generally, the party by whom the summons was taken out may
restore it to the list on seven clear days' notice to all the other parties on whom the summons
was served.
PROCEEDING IN ABSENCE OF PARTY (O.27, r.5)
5. (1) Where any party to a summons fails to attend on the first or any resumed hearing
thereof, the Court may proceed in his absence if, having regard to the nature of the
application, it thinks it just and expedient so to do.
(2) Before proceeding in the absence of any party the Court may require to be satisfied that
the summons or, as the case may be, notice of the time appointed for the resumed hearing
was duly served on that party.
(3) Where the Court hearing a summons has proceeded in the absence of a party, then,
provided that any order made on the hearing has not been perfected, the Court, if satisfied
that it is just to do so, may re-hear the summons.
(4) Where an application made by summons has been dismissed without a hearing by reason
of the failure of the party who took out the summons to attend the hearing, the Court, it
satisfied that it is just to do so, may allow the summons to be restored to the list.
ORDER MADE EX PARTE MAY BE SET ASIDE (O.27, r.6)
6. The Court may set aside an order made ex party.
SUMMONS FOR ATTENDANCE OF WITNESS (O. 27, r.7)
7. A summons may be issued to compel the attendance of a witness at proceedings in
chambers in the same way as such a summons is issuable to compel a witness to attend at the
trial of a suit. The summons may include a direction that the witness is to bring with him such
documents or other articles required for examination in the proceedings as may be specified.
REGISTRAR AND CERTAIN OTHER OFFICERS MAY ADMINISTER OATHS,
ETC., (O.27, r.8)
8. (1) The Registrar and any officer employed in the registry of the Supreme Court and
authorised in writing in that behalf by the Chief Justice may administer oaths and take
affidavits for the purpose of proceedings in the Supreme Court.
(2) Any officer employed in the registry of the District Court and authorised in writing in that
behalf by the Chief Justice may administer oaths and affidavits for the purpose of
proceedings in the District Court.
JURISDICTION OF REGISTRAR (O.27, r.9)
9. (1) In respect of proceedings in the Supreme Court the Registrar shall have power to
transact in chambers all such business and exercise all such authority and jurisdiction as
under the Act or these Rules may be transacted and exercised by a judge in chambers except
in respect of the following matters and proceedings, that is to say-
(a) appeals from decisions, orders and directions of the Registrar;
(b) applications for review of decisions of the Registrar on the taxation of costs;
(c) any other matter or proceeding which by any of these rules is required to be heard
only by a judge:
Provided that the Registrar shall not transact such business or exercise such authority and
jurisdiction at any time when a judge is available to transact or exercise it.
(2) An appeal shall lie to a judge against any decision, order or direction of the Registrar but,
unless a judge or the Registrar otherwise orders, the decision, order or direction of the
Registrar shall have full force and effect pending the determination of the appeal.
REFERENCE OF MATTER TO JUDGE (O.27, r.10)
10. The Registrar may refer to a judge any matter which he thinks requires to be decided by a
judge, and may adjourn the hearing of the summons insofar as it relates to at matter for that
purpose.
POWER TO DIRECT HEARING IN COURT (O.27, r.11)
11. (1) The judge in chambers may direct that any summons, application or appeal shall be
heard in court or shall be adjourned into court to be so heard if he considers that by reason of
its importance or for any other reason it should be so heard.
(2) Any matter heard in court by virtue of a direction under the last preceding paragraph may
be adjourned from court into chambers.
REMOVAL OF MATTERS INTO CHAMBERS (O.27, r.12)
12. The judge may by any judgment or order made in court in any proceedings direct that
such matters, if any, in the proceedings as he may specify shall be disposed of in chambers;
the hearing in chambers shall be by a judge and not by the Registrar.
NOTES OF PROCEEDINGS IN CHAMBERS (O.27, r.13)
13. A note shall be kept of all proceedings in chambers with the dates thereof so all such
proceedings in any suit are noted in chronological order with a short statement of the matters
decided at each hearing.
______
ORDER 28
MODE, ETC., OF TRIAL
MODE OF TRIAL (O.28, r.1)
1. (1) Save as provided for by these Rules of Court or any other written law, every suit shall
be tried in court.
(2) If any party wishes the Court to be assisted by one or more assessors in any suit of the
kind referred to in subsection (2) of section 15 of the Act, he shall make application by
summons not later than fourteen days after the close of the pleadings. If all parties to the suit
agree that the Court should be assisted by one or more assessors, a direction shall be given
accordingly. If the parties do not all agree, the Court shall decide whether or not to give the
direction sought.
TIME OF TRIAL OF QUESTIONS OR ISSUES (O.28, r.2)
2. The Court may order any question or issue arising in a suit, whether of fact or law or partly
of fact and partly of law, and whether raised by the pleadings or otherwise, to be tried before,
at or after the trial of the cause or matter, and may give directions as to the manner in which
the question shall be stated.
TRIAL WITH ASSISTANCE OF ASSESSORS (O.28, r.3)
3. Where a suit is tried with the assistance of one or more assessors, the assessor or assessors
shall attend throughout the trial and shall retire with the Court when the Court retires to
prepare its decision on the facts in issue.
DISMISSAL OF SUIT AFTER DECISION OF PRELIMINARY ISSUE (O.28, r.4)
4. If it appears to the Court that the decision of any question or issue arising in a suit and tried
separately from the suit substantially disposes of the suit or renders the trial of the suit
unnecessary, it may dismiss the suit or make such other order or give such judgment therein
as may be just.
_______
ORDER 29
SETTING SUIT DOWN FOR TRIAL
TIME FOR SETTING SUIT DOWN (O.29, r.1)
1. (1) Subject to any directions given by the Court in the suit, the plaintiff may set a suit
commenced by a writ of summons down for hearing at any time after the elapse of seven
days from the close of pleadings.
(2) If the plaintiff fails to set the suit down in accordance with any directions given in the suit
or, if no such directions have been given, within 21 days of the close of pleadings, any other
party to the suit may do so.
(3) Without prejudice to the last preceding paragraph, if any party fails to set the suit down
for hearing in accordance with any directions given in the suit, any other party thereto may
apply to the Court to dismiss the suit or any counterclaim therein made by the party in
default.
MODE OF SETTING SUIT DOWN (O.29, r.2)
2. (1) A party may set a suit down for trial by delivering to the registry of the Court in which
the suit is pending a request in Form No. 19 of Appendix A for a hearing date to be assigned.
(2) A request for a hearing date to be assigned must be accompanied by two bundles, one of
which shall serve as the record and the other for the use of the judge or magistrate, each
containing one copy of each of the following documents -
(a) the writ of summons;
(b) the pleadings, any request or order for particulars and the particulars given; and
(c) all orders made on any summonses issued in the suit.
SERVICE OF COPY OF REQUEST ON OTHER PARTIES (O.29, r.3)
3. The party setting a suit down for hearing shall within 24 hours of doing so serve, or cause
to be served, on each of the other parties to the suit a copy of the request for assignment of a
hearing date.
DUTY OF PARTIES TO FURNISH INFORMATION AS TO ESTIMATED LENGTH
OF TRIAL (O.29, r.4)
4. It shall be the duty of all parties to a suit entered in any list to furnish without delay to the
Registrar or Clerk, as the case may be, all available information as to the suit being or being
likely to be settled, or affecting the estimated length of the trial, and, if the suit is settled or
withdrawn, to notify that officer of the fact without delay and take such steps as may be
necessary to withdraw the record.
ABATEMENT OF CAUSE OF ACTION (O.29, r.5)
5. (1) Where after a suit has been set down for trial the suit becomes abated, or the interest or
liability of any party to the suit is assigned or transmitted to or devolves on some other
person, the barrister and solicitor or pleader for the plaintiff or other party having the conduct
of the suit must, as soon as practicable after becoming aware of it, certify the abatement or
change of interest or liability and send the certificate to the Registrar or Clerk, as the case
may be, and that officer shall cause the appropriate entry to be made in the cause book and
take such other action as may be necessary.
(2) Where a suit stands for one year abated or ordered to stand over generally, the suit shall
on the expiration of that year be struck out of the list unless, in the case of a suit ordered to
stand over generally, the order otherwise provides.
ASSIGNMENT OF HEARING DATE (O.29, r.6)
6. (1) Subject to Rule 3 of Order 31 and to any directions of -
(a) where the suit is in the Supreme Court, the Chief Justice; and
(b) where the suit is in the District Court, the resident magistrate,
the Registrar or the Clerk of the District Court, as the case may be, shall assign a hearing date
to any suit set down for trial and shall cause a notice of the hearing date in Form No. 20 of
Appendix A to be served on the barrister and solicitor or pleader of each of the parties to the
suit or, if any party is not represented by a barrister and solicitor or pleader, on that party.
(2) Except with the consent of all the parties to a suit, the date set as the hearing date for the
suit shall be not less than 14 days after the date on which the suit is set down for trial.
PLACE OF TRIAL (O.29, r.7)
7. (1) Unless stated otherwise in the notice of the hearing date or by any subsequent notice,
the place of trial shall be the Court House at Yaren.
(2) No other place shall be stated in any notice as the place of the trial of any suit unless so
directed by the Chief Justice or, in relation to a suit in the District Court, the resident
magistrate.
…………………………
TIME OF TRIAL (O.29, r.8)
8. Unless stated otherwise in the notice of the hearing date or by any subsequent notice, a suit
shall be called on for trial at 9 o'clock in the forenoon.
______
ORDER 30
PROCEEDINGS AT TRIAL
FAILURE TO APPEAR BY ALL PARTIES OR ONE OF THEM (O.30, r.1)
1. (1) If, when the trial of a suit is called on, none of the parties appears, the suit may be
struck out of the list, without prejudice, however, to the restoration thereof, on the direction
of -
(a) where the suit was in the Supreme Court, a judge; and
(b) where the suit was in the District Court, the resident magistrate.
(2) If, when the trial of a suit is called on, one party does not appear, the Court may proceed
with the trial of the suit or any counterclaim in the absence of that party.
JUDGMENT GIVEN IN ABSENCE OF PARTY MAY BE SET ASIDE (O.30, r.2)
2. (1) Any judgment, order or verdict obtained where one party does not appear at the trial
may be set aside by the Court, on the application of that party, on such terms as it thinks just.
(2) An application under this rule must be made within 7 days after the trial.
ADJOURNMENT OF TRIAL (O.30, r.3)
3. The Court may, if it thinks its expedient in the interest of justice, adjourn a trial for such
time, and to such place and upon such terms, if any, as it thinks fit.
ORDER OF SPEECHES (O.30, r.4)
4. (1) The Court by which a suit is tried may give directions as to the party to begin and the
order of speeches at the trial, and, subject to any such directions, the party to begin and the
order of speeches shall be that provided by this rule.
(2) Subject to paragraph (6), the plaintiff shall begin by opening his case.
(3) If the defendant elects not to adduce evidence, then, whether or not the defendant has in
the course of cross-examination of a witness for the plaintiff or otherwise put in a document,
the plaintiff may, after the evidence on his behalf has been given, make a second speech
closing his case and the defendant shall then state his case.
(4) If the defendant elects to adduce evidence, he may, after any evidence on behalf of the
plaintiff has been given, open his case and, after the evidence on his behalf has been given,
make a second speech closing his case, and at the close of the defendant's case the plaintiff
may make a speech in reply.
(5) Where there are two or more defendants who appear separately or are separately
represented, then -
(a) if none of them elects to adduce evidence, each of them shall state his case in the
order in which his name appears on the record;
(b) if each of them elects to adduce evidence, each of them may open his case and the
evidence on behalf of each of them shall be given in the order aforesaid and the
speech of each of them closing his case shall be made in that order after the evidence
on behalf of all the defendants has been given;
(c) If some of them elect to adduce evidence and some do not, those who do no shall
state their cases in the order aforesaid after the speech of the plaintiff in reply to the
other defendants.
(6) Where the burden of proof of all the issues in the suit lies on the defendant or, where there
are two or more defendant and they appear separately or are separately represented, on one of
the defendants, the defendant or that defendant, as the case may be, shall be entitled to begin,
and in that case paragraphs (2), (3) and (4) shall have effect in relation to, and as between,
him and the plaintiff as if for references to the plaintiff and the defendant there were
substituted references to the defendant and the plaintiff respectively.
(7) Where, as between the plaintiff and any defendant, the party who would, but for this
paragraph, be entitled to make the final speech raises any fresh point of law in that speech or
cites in that speech any authority not previously cited, the opposite party may make a further
speech in reply, but only in relation to that point of law or that authority, as the case may be.
(8) Instead of, or in addition to, making any speech authorised by this rule, a party may
present his argument, or any part of his argument, in writing. Such written argument shall be
typed in English and shall not be admissible unless a copy thereof has been served on all the
other parties to the suit not less than 24 hours before the time at which it is tendered. It shall
be tendered to the Court together with two carbon or photographic copies thereof.
INSPECTION BY COURT (O.3O. r.5)
5. (1) The Court by which a suit is tried may inspect any place or thing with respect to which
any question arises in that suit.
(2) Where the Court inspects any place or thing under the last preceding paragraph, it shall –
(a) if assisted by assessors, be accompanied in the inspection by the assessors; and
(b) be accompanied by the parties, if they wish to be present.
DEATH OF PARTY BEFORE JUDGMENT (O.30, r.6)
6. Where a party to any suit dies after the verdict or finding of the issues of fact and before
judgment is given, judgment may be given notwithstanding the death, but the foregoing
provision shall not be taken as affecting the power of the Court to make an order under
paragraph (2) of Rule 8 of Order 12 before giving judgment.
LIST OF EXHIBITS (O.30, r.7)
7. (1) In the Supreme Court the Registrar, and in the District Court the Clerk, shall take
charge of every document or object put in as an exhibit during the trial of any suit and shall
mark or label every exhibit with a letter or letters indicating the party by whom the exhibit is
put in or by whose witness it is proved, and with a number, so that all the exhibits put in by a
party, or proved by that party's witnesses, are numbered in one consecutive series.
In this paragraph a witness by whom an exhibit is proved includes a witness in the course of
whose evidence the exhibit is put in.
(2) The Registrar or the Clerk, as the case may be, shall cause a list to be made of all the
exhibits in the suit, and any party may, on payment of the prescribed fee, have an office copy
of that list.
(3) The list of exhibits when completed shall be attached to the pleadings and shall form part
of the record of the suit.
(4) For the purpose of this rule a bundle of documents may be treated and counted as one
exhibit.
CUSTODY OF EXHIBIT AFTER TRIAL (O.30, r.8)
8. It shall be the duty of every party to a suit who has put in any exhibit to apply to the
Registrar or the Clerk immediately after the trial for the return of the exhibit, and, so far as is
practicable, regard being had to the nature of the exhibit, to keep it duly marked and labelled
as before, so that in the event of an appeal, he may be able to produce the exhibit so marked
and labelled at the hearing of the appeal in case he is required by the appellate court to do so.
IMPOUNDED DOCUMENTS (O.30, r.9)
9. (1) Documents impounded by order of a Court shall not be delivered out of the custody of
the Court except in compliance with an order made by judge or resident magistrate, as the
case may be, on an application made by summons:
Provided that, where the Director of Public Prosecutions makes a written request in that
behalf, documents so impounded shall be delivered into his custody.
(2) Documents impounded by order of a Court, while in the custody of the Court, shall not be
inspected except by a person authorised to do so by an order signed by a judge or, where the
document is in the custody of the District Court, of the resident magistrate.
______
ORDER 31
REFERENCE TO REFEREES FOR INQUIRY AND REPORT
REFERENCE TO A REFEREE (O.31, r.1)
1. Where reference of a suit or of any question therein to a referee for inquiry and report is
authorised by section 32 of the Courts Act 1972, the reference may be made by -
(a) where the suit is in the Supreme Court a judge; and
(b) where the suit is in the District Court, the resident magistrate, upon application by
summons.
SUMMONS FOR ORDER (O.31, r.2)
2. (1) Every summons for an order for the reference of a suit or of a question therein to a
referee for inquiry and report shall include -
(a) a statement whether reference of the whole suit or only of a question therein is
sought and, if the latter, a statement of such question;
(b) where the appointment of a referee resident outside Nauru will be sought, the
names of suitable persons for appointment and, if known, a statement whether or not
the other parties to the suit would consent to their appointment; and
(c) an undertaking to deposit in the Court, or where the referee is resident outside
Nauru with such other person as the Court may order, before the reference is made a
sum adequate to defray the referee's, fees and expenses in respect of the inquiry and
report.
(2) Where a summons contains a statement that the other parties to the suit would consent to
the appointment as referee of any person named therein, the summons shall be accompanied
by a statement signed by such other party or his barrister and solicitor or pleader that he
would so consent.
(3) The judge or resident magistrate, as the case may be, shall not be bound to appoint any
person as referee, notwithstanding that all the parties to the suit would agree to his
appointment.
ORDER ON COURT'S OWN MOTION (O.31, r.3)
3. (1) Where -
(a) in respect of a suit in the Supreme Court, a judge or the Registrar; and
(b) in respect of a suit in the District Court, the resident magistrate,
upon perusing the pleading and other documents therein before the trial considers that
reference to a referee may be expedient because either of the conditions referred to in sub-
paragraph (i) and (ii) of section 32(1) (a) of the Courts Act 1972 exist in that suit, he may
cause a summons to issue to all parties in the suit and, after hearing them, if they wish to be
heard, may, if he thinks fit, order that the suit be referred to a referee for inquiry and report.
(2) At any stage of the trial of a suit, the Court may, of its own motion, refer the suit to a
referee for inquiry and report if either of the conditions referred to in sub-paragraphs (i) and
(ii) of section 32(1) (a) of the Courts Act 1972 exist in that suit, and in that event shall
adjourn the trial until the referee's report is received.
HEARING DATE NOT TO BE ASSIGNED UNLESS DIRECTED IF REFERENCE
ORDERED (O.31, r.4)
4. (1) Where prior to the trial of a suit an order is made referring that suit, or any question
therein, to a referee for inquiry and report, a hearing date shall not be assigned for the trial of
that suit unless the judge or the resident magistrate, as the case may be, directs otherwise.
(2) If a hearing date has been assigned and a notice of the hearing date has been served on
any party prior to the making of an order of reference, then, unless the judge or the resident
magistrate, as the case may be, directs at the time of making the order that the trial is to
proceed, the notice shall be cancelled and notice of the cancellation served on the party
concerned.
REPORT ON REFERENCE (O.31, r.5)
5. (1) The report made by a referee in pursuance of a reference shall be made to the Court and
notice thereof served on the parties to the reference.
(2) The referee may in his report submit any question arising therein for the decision of the
Court or make a special statement of facts from which the Court may draw such inferences as
it thinks fit.
(3) On the receipt of the referee's report, the Court may -
(a) adopt the report in whole or in part;
(b) vary the report;
(c) require an explanation from him;
(d) remit the whole or any part of the question or issue originally referred to him for
further consideration by him or any other referee; or
(e) decide the question or issue originally referred to him on the evidence taken before
him, either with or without additional evidence.
(4) When the report of the referee has been made, an application to vary the report or remit
the whole or any part of the suit or of the question originally referred may be made on the
hearing by the Court of the further consideration of the cause or matter, after giving not less
than 10 days' notice thereof, and any other application with respect to the report may be made
on that hearing without notice.
(5) Where on a reference the Court orders that the further consideration of the suit in question
shall not stand adjourned until the receipt of the official referee's report, the order may
contain directions with respect to the proceedings on the receipt of the report, and the
preceding provisions of this rule shall have effect subject to any such directions.
POWERS ETC., OF REFEREES (O.31, r.6)
6. (1) Subject to any directions contained in the order referring any suit or question to a
referee –
(a) the referee shall for the purpose of, and so far as is necessary for his inquiry, have
in Nauru the same jurisdiction, powers and duties as the Court, exercisable or, as the
case may be, to be performed as nearly as circumstances admit in the in the like cases,
in the like manner and subject to the like limitations; and
(b) all proceedings before a referee shall, as nearly as circumstances admit, be
conducted in the like manner as the like proceedings before the Court.
(2) A referee may hold any proceeding before him at any place which appears to him to be
convenient and may adjourn the proceedings from place to place as he thinks fit.
FEES AND EXPENSES OF REFEREES (O.31, r.7)
7. (1) No fees shall be paid to a referee who is a public officer.
(2) No reference to a referee shall be made unless the judge or the resident magistrate, as the
case may be, is satisfied that a sum of money adequate to defray all the fees and expenses of
the referee in respect of his inquiry and report, and all expenses of and incidental to his
inquiry and report have been paid into court or, where the referee is resident outside Nauru,
deposited with a person outside Nauru authorised in that behalf by the Court to be held by
that person to await the orders of the Court.
(3) Neither the Republic nor the Court shall be liable to pay in respect of any fees or expenses
of a referee or of or incidental to his inquiry and report a sum greater than the sum deposited
for that purpose under the last preceding paragraph or to pay such fees and expenses in any
place or in any currency other than the place in which the money is deposited and the
currency of the money deposited.
_______
ORDER 32
EVIDENCE: GENERAL
GENERAL RULE: WITNESSES TO BE EXAMINED ORALLY (O.32, r.1)
1. Subject to the provisions of these Rules and of any written law or applied statute relating to
evidence, any fact required to be proved at the trial of any suit by the evidence of witnesses
shall be proved by the examination of the witnesses orally and in open court.
EVIDENCE BY AFFIDAVIT (O.32, r.2)
2. (1) A Court may, at or before the trial by it of a suit, order that the affidavit of any witness
may be read at the trial if in the circumstances of the case it thinks it reasonable so to order.
(2) An order under the last preceding paragraph may he made on such terms as to the filing
and giving of copies of the affidavits and as to the production of the deponents for cross-
examination as the Court thinks fit but, subject to any such terms and to any subsequent order
of the Court, the deponents shall not be subject to cross-examination and need not attend the
trial for the purpose.
EVIDENCE OF PARTICULAR FACTS (O.32, r.3)
3. (1) Without prejudice to Rule 2, a Court may, at or before the trial by it of any suit, order
that evidence of any particular fact shall be given at the trial in such manner as may be
specified by the order.
(2) The power conferred by the last preceding paragraph extends in particular to ordering that
evidence of any particular fact may be given at the trial –
(a) by statement on oath of information or belief;
(b) by the production of documents or entries in books;
(c) by copies of documents or entries in books; or
(d) in the case of a fact which is or was a matter of common knowledge either
generally or in a particular district, by the production of a specified newspaper which
contains a statement of that fact.
LIMITATION OF EXPERT EVIDENCE (O.32, r.4)
4. A Court may, at or before the trial by it of any suit, order that the number of medical or
other witnesses who may be called at the trial shall be limited as specified by the order.
LIMITATION OF PLANS, ETC., IN EVIDENCE (O.32, r.5)
5. Unless, at or before the trial, the Court otherwise orders, no plan, photograph or model
shall be receivable in evidence at the trial of a suit unless at leased 10 days before the
commencement of the trial the parties, other than the party producing it, have been given an
opportunity to inspect it and to agree to the admission thereof without further proof.
EXPERT EVIDENCE IN SUIT ARISING OUT OF ACCIDENT (O.32, r.6)
6. In a suit arising out of an accident on land due to a collision or apprehended collision,
unless at or before the trial the Court otherwise orders, the oral expert evidence of an
engineer sought to be called on account of his skill and knowledge in respect of motor
vehicles shall not be receivable unless at least 10 days before the commencement of the trial a
copy of a report from him containing the substance of his evidence has been made available
to all parties for inspection.
REVOCATION OR VARIATION OF ORDERS UNDER RULES 2 TO 6 (O.32, r.7)
7. Any order under Rules 2 to 6, including an order made on appeal, may, on sufficient cause
being shown, be revoked or varied by a subsequent order of the Court made at or before the
trial.
APPLICATION TO TRIALS OF ISSUES, ETC. (O.32, r.8)
8. The preceding rules of this Order shall apply to trials of issues or questions of fact or law,
references and inquiries as they apply to the trial of suits.
DEPOSITIONS: WHEN RECEIVABLE AT TRIAL (O.32; r.9)
9. (1) No deposition taken in any suit shall be received in evidence at the trial of the suit
unless -
(a) the deposition was taken in pursuance of an order under Rule 1 of Order 33; and
(b) either the party against whom the evidence is offered consents or it is proved to
the satisfaction of the Court that the deponent is dead, or outside Nauru or unable
from sickness or other infirmity to attend the trial.
(2) A party intending to use any deposition in evidence at the trial of a suit must, a reasonable
time before the trial, give notice of his intention to do so to the other party.
(3) A deposition purporting to be signed by the person before whom it was taken shall be
receivable in evidence without proof of the signature being the signature of that person.
COURT DOCUMENTS ADMISSIBLE OR RECEIVABLE IN EVIDENCE (O.32, r.10)
10. (1) Office copies of writs, records, pleadings and documents filed in the registry the
Supreme Court or the District Court shall be admissible in evidence in any suit and between
all parties to the same extent as the original would be admissible.
(2) Without prejudice to the provisions of any written law, every document purporting to be
sealed with the seal of the Supreme Court or of the District Court shall received in evidence
without further proof, and any document purporting to be so sealed and to be a copy of a
document filed in, or issued out of the registry of that Court shall be deemed to be an office
copy of that document without further proof unless the contrary is shown.
EVIDENCE OF CONSENT OF NEW TRUSTEE TO ACT (O.32, r.11)
11. A document purporting to contain the written consent of a person to act as trustee and to
bear his signature verified by some other person shall be evidence of such consent.
EVIDENCE AT TRIAL MAY BE USED IN SUBSEQUENT PROCEEDINGS (O.32,
r.12)
12. Any evidence taken at the trial of any suit may be used in any subsequent proceedings in
that suit.
ORDER TO PRODUCE DOCUMENT AT PROCEEDING OTHER THAN TRIAL
(O.32, r.13)
13. (1) At any stage in a suit the Court may order any person to attend any proceedings in the
suit and produce any document, to be specified or described in the order, the production of
which appears to the Court to be necessary for the purpose of that proceeding.
(2) No person shall be compelled by an order under the last preceding paragraph to produce
any document at a proceeding in a suit which he could not be compelled to produce at the
trial of that suit.
FORM AND ISSUE OF WITNESS SUMMONS (O.32, r.14)
14. (1) A witness summons must be in Form No. 21 of Appendix A.
(2) Issue of a witness summons takes place upon its being signed by -
(a) in respect of proceedings in the Supreme Court, the Registrar; and
(b) in respect of proceedings in the District Court, the Clerk, and sealed with the seal
of the Court.
(3) Before a witness summons is issued a written application signed by the barrister and
solicitor or pleader of the party applying for the issue of the summons or, where that party is
not represented, by that party himself for the issue of the summons must be filed in the
registry of the Court of which the summons is to issue.
MORE THAN ONE NAME MAY BE INCLUDED IN SUMMONS (O.32, r.15)
15. The names of two or more persons may be included in one witness summons.
AMENDMENT OF WITNESS SUMMONS (O.32, r.16)
16. Where there is a mistake in any person's name or address in a witness summons, then if
the summons has not been served, the party at whose request it was issued may have it re-
sealed in correct form by filing a second application under paragraph (3) of Rule 14 and the
summons shall be indorsed with the words "Amended and re-sealed".
SERVICE OF WITNESS SUMMONS (O.32, r.17)
17. A witness summons must be served personally and the service shall not be valid unless
effected within 12 weeks after the date of its issue.
DURATION OF SUMMONS (O.32, r.18)
18. A witness summons continues to have effect until the conclusion of the trial at which the
attendance of the witness is required.
______
ORDER 33
EVIDENCE BY DEPOSITION
POWER TO ISSUE COMMISSION FOR DEPOSITION TO BE TAKEN (O.33, r.1)
1. (1) A Court may, in any suit where it appears necessary for the purposes of justice, issue a
commission in Form No. 22 of Appendix A for the examination on oath before an officer of
the Court, a Commissioner appointed under section 72 of the Courts Act 1972 or some other
person, at any place in Nauru, of any person.
(2) A commission under the last preceding paragraph may be made on such terms, including,
in particular, terms as to the giving of discovery before the examination takes place, as the
Court thinks fit.
(3) Application for the issue of a commission under paragraph (1) shall be by summons.
DEPOSITION OF PERSON OUTSIDE NAURU (O.33, r.2)
2. (1) Where a person whose examination is required is outside Nauru, an application may be
made -
(a) for an order, in Form No. 23 of Appendix A, for the issue of a letter of request to
the judicial authorities of the country in which that person is to take, or cause to be
taken, the evidence of that person; or
(b) if the government of that country allows a person in that country to be examined
before a person appointed by the Court, for a commission in Form No. 24 of
Appendix A to a Commissioner appointed under section 72 of the Courts Act 1972 or
some other person to take the evidence of that person in that country.
(2) An application under the last preceding paragraph may be made only in respect of a
person whose evidence is required for a suit in the Supreme Court.
ORDER FOR ISSUE OF LETTER OF REQUEST (O.33, r.3)
3. (1) Where an order is made under Rule 2 for the issue of a letter of request to the judicial
authorities of a country to take, or cause to be taken, the evidence of any person in that
country the following provisions of this rule shall apply.
(2) The party obtaining the order must prepare the letter of request and lodge it to the registry
of the Supreme Court, and the letter must be in Form No. 25 of Appendix A, with such
variations as the order may require.
(3) If the evidence of the person to be examined is to be obtained by means of written
questions, there must be lodged with the letter of request a copy of the interrogatories and
cross-interrogatories to be put to him on examination.
(4) Unless the official language, or one of the official languages, of the country in which the
examination is to be taken is English, each document lodged under the last two preceding
paragraphs must be accompanied by a translation of the document in the official language of
that country or, if there is more than one official language of that country, in any one of those
languages which is appropriate to the place in that country where the examination is to be
taken.
(5) Every translation lodged under the last preceding paragraph must be certified by the
person making it to be a correct translation; and the certificate must contain a statement of
that person's full name, of his address and of his qualifications for making the translation.
(6) The party obtaining the order must, when he lodges in the registry the documents
mentioned in the last four preceding paragraphs, also file in that office an undertaking signed
by him or by his barrister and solicitor or pleader to be responsible personally for all
expenses incurred by the Republic in respect of the letter of request and, on receiving due
notification of the amount of those expenses, to pay that amount to the Registrar.
ENFORCING ATTENDANCE OF WITNESS AT EXAMINATION (O.33, r.4)
4. Where an order has been made under Rule 1 -
(a) for the examination of any person before any person, in this rule and Rules 5 to 14
referred to as "the examiner"; or
(b) for the cross-examination before the examiner of any person who has made an
affidavit which is to be used in any cause or matter,
the attendance of that person before the examiner and the production by him of any document
the examination may be enforced by a witness summons in like manner as the attendance of a
witness and the production by a witness of a document at a trial may be enforced.
REFUSAL OF WITNESS TO ATTEND, BE SWORN, ETC. (O.33, r.5)
5. (1) If any person, having been duly summoned by a witness summons to attend before the
examiner, refuses or fails to attend or refuses to be sworn for the purpose of the examination
or to answer any lawful question or produce any document therein, a certificate of his refusal
or failure, signed by the examiner, must be filed in the registry of the Court in which the suit
is proceeding, and upon the filing of the certificate the party by whom the attendance of that
person was required may apply to the Court for an order requiring that person to attend, or to
be sworn or to answer any question or produce any document, as the case may be.
(2) An application for an order under this rule may be made ex parte.
(3) If the Court makes an order under this rule it may order the person against whom the
order is made to pay any costs occasioned by his refusal or failure.
(4) A person who wilfully disobeys any order made against him under paragraph (1) is guilty
of contempt of court.
APPOINTMENT OF TIME AND PLACE FOR EXAMINATION (O.33, r.6)
6. (1) The examiner must give the party on whose application the order for examination was
made a notice appointing the place and time at which, subject to any application by the
parties, the examination shall be taken, and such time shall, having regard to the convenience
of the persons to be examined and all the circumstances of the case, be as soon as practicable
after the making of the order.
(2) The party to whom a notice under the last preceding paragraph is given must on receiving
it forthwith give notice of the appointment to all the other parties.
(3) In this rule and in Rules 7 to 14 the expression ''the examiner'' includes a person appointed
under sub-paragraph (b) of Rule 2(1).
EXAMINER TO HAVE CERTAIN DOCUMENTS (O.33, r.7)
7. The party on whose application the order for examination before the examiner was made
must furnish the examiner with copies of such of the documents in the suit as are necessary to
inform him of the questions at issue in the suit.
CONDUCT OF EXAMINATION (O.33, r.8)
8. (1) Subject to any directions contained in the order for examination -
(a) any person ordered to be examined before the examiner may be cross-examined
and re-examined; and
(b) the examination, cross-examination and re-examination of persons before the
examiner shall be conducted in like manner as at the trial of a cause or matter.
(2) The examiner may put any question to any person examined before him as to the meaning
of any answer made by that person or as to any matter arising in the course of the
examination.
(3) The examiner may, it necessary, adjourn the examination from time to time.
EXAMINATION OF ADDITIONAL WITNESSES (O.33, r.9)
9. The examiner may, with the written consent of all the parties to the suit, take the
examination of any person in addition to those named or provided for in the order for
examination, and must annex such consent to the original deposition of that person.
OBJECTION TO QUESTIONS (O.33 r.10)
10. (1) if any person being examined before the examiner objects to answer any question put
to him, or if objection is taken to any such question, that question, the ground for the
objection and the answer to any such question to which objection is taken must be set out in
the deposition of that person or in a statement annexed thereto.
(2) The validity of the ground for objecting to answer any such question or for objecting to
any such question shall be decided by the Court and not by the examiner, but the examiner
must state to the parties his opinion thereon and the statement of his opinion must be set out
in the deposition or in a statement annexed thereto.
(3) If the Court decides against the person taking the objection it may order him to pay the
costs occasioned by his objection.
TAKING OF DEPOSITIONS (O.33, r.11)
11. (1) The deposition of any person examined before the examiner must be taken down by
the examiner or by a shorthand writer or some other person in his presence but, subject to the
next following paragraph and paragraph (1) of Rule 10, the deposition need not set out every
question and answer so long as it contains as nearly as may be the statement of the person
examined.
(2) The examiner may direct the exact words of any particular question and the answer
thereto to be set out in the deposition if that question and answer appear to him to have
special importance.
(3) The deposition of any person shall be read to him, and he shall be asked to sign it, in the
presence of such of the parties as may attend, but the parties may agree in writing to dispense
with the foregoing provision.
If a person refuses to sign a deposition when asked under this paragraph to do so, the
examiner must sign the deposition.
(4) The original deposition of any person, authenticated by the signature of the examiner
before whom it was taken, must be sent by the examiner to the registry of the Court in which
the suit is proceeding and shall be filed therein.
TIME TAKEN BY EXAMINATION TO BE INDORSED ON DEPOSITIONS (O.33,
r.12)
12. Before sending any deposition to the registry under paragraph (4) of Rule 11, the
examiner, must indorse on the deposition a statement signed by him of the time occupied in
taking the examination and the fees, if any, received in respect thereof.
SPECIAL REPORT BY EXAMINER (O.33, r.13)
13. The examiner may make a special report to the Court with regard to any examination
taken before him and with regard to the absence or conduct of any person there at, and the
Court may direct such proceedings to be taken, or make such order, on the report as it thinks
fit.
ORDER FOR PAYMENT OF EXAMINER'S FEES AND EXPENSES (O.33, r.14)
14. (1) If the fees and expenses due to an examiner are not paid, he may report that fact to the
Court and the Court may direct the Registrar or the Clerk, as the case may be, to apply for an
order against the party on whose application the commission for examination of the witness
was issued to pay the examiner the fees and expenses due to him in respect of the
examination.
(2) An order under this rule shall not prejudice, any determination on the taxation of costs or
otherwise as to the party by whom the costs of the examination are ultimately to be borne.
PERPETUATION OF TESTIMONY (O.33, r.15)
15. (1) Witnesses shall not be examined to perpetuate testimony unless a suit has been
commenced for the purpose.
(2) Any person who would under the circumstances alleged by him to exist become entitled,
upon the happening of any future event, to any honour, title, dignity or office, or to any estate
or interest in any real or personal property, the right or claim to which cannot be brought to
trial by him before the happening of such event, may begin a suit to perpetuate any testimony
which may be material for establishing such right or claim.
(3) No suit to perpetuate the testimony of witnesses shall be set down for trial.
FEES AND EXPENSES OF PERSONS TO WHOM COMMISSIONS ARE ISSUER
TO EXAMINE WITNESSES (O.33, r.16)
16. (1) A person to whom a commission is issued under Rule 1 or sub-paragraph (b) of Rule
2(1) shall be entitled to receive such fee, if any, as the judge or the resident magistrate issuing
the commission directs and to be reimbursed his proper expenses of attending for the
examination.
(2) The party on whose application the commission was issued shall be liable to pay such
fees and expenses:
Provided that on the taxation of costs or by an order of the Court any other party may be
adjudged liable to pay to that party the costs of the examination.
______
ORDER 34
AFFIDAVITS
FORM OF AFFIDAVIT (O.34, r.1)
1. (1) Subject to the next two following paragraphs every affidavit sworn in a suit must be
entitled in that suit.
(2) Where a suit is entitled in more than one matter, it shall be sufficient to state the first
matter followed by the words "and another matter" or "and other matters" as appropriate, and
where a suit is entitled in a matter or matters and between parties, that part of the title which
consists of the matter or matters may be omitted.
(3) Where there are more plaintiffs than one, it shall be sufficient to state the full name of the
first followed by the words "and another" or "and others" as appropriate, and similarly with
respect to defendants.
(4) Every affidavit must be expressed in the first person and must state the place of residence
of the deponent and his occupation or, if he has none, his description, and if he is, or is
employed by, a party to the cause or matter in which the affidavit is sworn, the affidavit must
state that fact.
(5) Every affidavit must be in book form, following continuously from page to page, one side
only of the paper being used, and each page being initialled at its foot by the deponent and
the person before whom the affidavit is sworn.
(6) Every affidavit must be divided into paragraphs numbered consecutively, each paragraph
being as far as possible confined to a distinct portion of the subject.
(7) Sums and other numbers, cardinal and ordinal, must be expressed in an affidavit in figures
and not in words.
(8) Every affidavit must be signed by every deponent thereto and a separate jurat in respect of
each deponent must be completed and signed by the person before whom it is sworn.
FORM OF JURAT (O.34, r.2)
2. Subject to Rules 3 and 4, the form of the jurat of every affidavit shall be "Sworn by
………….. at …………… this ………………… day of ……………….., 19…., before me".
AFFIDAVIT BY ILLITERATE OR BLIND PERSON (O.34, r.3)
3. Where it appears to the person administering the oath that the deponent is illiterate or
blind, he must certify in the jurat that -
(a) the affidavit was read in his presence to the deponent;
(b) the deponent seemed perfectly to understand it; and
(c) the deponent made his signature or mark in his presence;
and the affidavit shall not be use in evidence without such a certificate unless the Court is
otherwise satisfied that it was read to and appeared to be perfectly understood by the
deponent.
AFFIDAVIT IN ENGLISH BY PERSON WHO DOES NOT UNDERSTAND
ENGLISH (O.34, r.4)
4. (1) Where an affidavit is made in the English language and it appears to the person
administering the oath that the deponent does not understand the English language,
he must certify in the jurat that -
(a) the affidavit was read to the deponent in a language, to be specifies, understood by
him;
(b) the deponent seemed perfectly to understand it; and
(c) the deponent made his signature or mark in his presence;
and the affidavit shall not be used in evidence without such a certificate unless the Court is
otherwise satisfied that it was read to the deponent in a language understood by him and
appeared to be perfectly understood by him.
(2) Where the person administering the oath is not able himself to understand the language in
which the affidavit is read to the deponent, the person so reading it shall certify at the foot of
the affidavit that -
(a) he read the affidavit to the deponent in a language, to be specified, understood by
the deponent;
(b) he has a good command of that language and of the English language; and
(c) the deponent seemed perfectly to understand the affidavit when it was read to him
in that language.
USE OF DEFECTIVE AFFIDAVIT (O.34, r.5)
5. An affidavit may, with the leave of the Court, be filed or used in evidence notwithstanding
any irregularity in the form thereof.
CONTENTS OF AFFIDAVIT (O.34, r.6)
6. (1) Subject to the next following paragraph and to any order made under Rule 3 of Order
32, an affidavit may contain only such facts as the deponent is able of his own knowledge to
prove.
(2) An affidavit sworn for the purpose of being used in interlocutory proceedings may
contain statements of information or belief with the sources and grounds thereof.
SCANDALOUS, ETC., MATTER IN AFFIDAVIT (O.34, r.7)
7. The Court may order to be struck out of any affidavit any matter which is scandalous,
irrelevant or oppressive.
ALTERATIONS IN AFFIDAVITS (O.34, r.8)
8. (1) An affidavit which has in the jurat or body thereof any interlineation, erasure or other
alteration shall not be filed or used in any proceeding without the leave of the Court unless
the person before whom the affidavit was sworn has initialled the alteration and, in the case
of an erasure, has re-written in the margin of the affidavit any words or figures written on the
erasure and has signed or initialled them.
(2) Where an affidavit is sworn at the registry of the Supreme Court or the District Court the
official stamp of that registry may be substituted for the signature or initials required by this
rule.
AFFIDAVIT NOT TO BE SWORN BEFORE BARRISTER AND SOLICITOR OR
PLEADER OF PARTY (O.34, r.9)
9. No affidavit shall be sufficient if sworn before the barrister and solicitor or pleader of the
party on whose behalf the affidavit is to be used or before any agent, partner or clerk of that
barrister and solicitor or pleader.
FILING OF AFFIDAVITS (O.34, r.10)
10. (1) Every affidavit used in a suit must be filed in that registry of the Court in which the
suit is proceeding.
(2) Every affidavit must be indorsed with a note showing on whose behalf it is filed and the
dates of swearing and filing, and an affidavit which is not so indorsed may not be filed or
used without the leave of the Court.
USE OF ORIGINAL AFFIDAVIT OR OFFICE COPY (O.34, r.11)
11. (1) Subject to paragraph (2), an original affidavit may be used in proceedings in any
Court with the leave of that Court, notwithstanding that it has not been filed in accordance
with Rule 10.
(2) An original affidavit may not be used in any proceedings unless it has previously been
stamped with the appropriate fee stamp, if any.
(3) Where an original affidavit, is used, then, unless the party whose affidavit undertakes to
file it, he must immediately after it is used leave it with the Registrar or the Clerk, as the case
may be, in court or in chambers, as the case maybe, together with the proper filing fee and
that officer shall send it to be filed.
(4) Where an affidavit has been filed, an office copy thereof may be used in any proceedings.
DOCUMENT TO BE USED IN CONJUNCTION WITH AFFIDAVIT TO BE
EXHIBITED TO IT (O.34, r.12)
12. (1) Any document to be used in conjunction with an affidavit must be exhibited, and not
annexed, to the affidavit.
(2) Any exhibit to an affidavit must be identified by a certificate of the person before whom
the affidavit is sworn. The certificate must be entitled in the same manner as the affidavit and
paragraph (1), (2) and (3) of Rule 1 shall apply accordingly.
CERTAIN AFFIDAVITS TAKEN OUTSIDE NAURU ADMISSIBLE WITHOUT
PROOF OF SEAL (O.34, r.13)
13. A document purporting to have affixed or impressed thereon or subscribed thereto the
seal or signature of a court, judge, notary public or person having authority to administer
oaths in a part of the Commonwealth outside Nauru or in a State of the United States of
America or in Japan in testimony of an affidavit being taken before it or him in that place
shall be admitted in evidence without proof of the seal or signature being the seal or signature
of that court, judge, notary public or person.
______
ORDER 35
DECREES, JUDGMENTS AND ORDERS
FORM OF DECREE IF ISSUED (O.35, r.1)
1. It shall not be necessary for a decree to be drawn up and sealed in respect of any judgment
but, if a decree is issued, the form thereof shall be Form No. 26 of Appendix A adapted as
required to meet the case.
FORM OF DEFAULT JUDGMENT (O.35, r.2)
2. Where judgment is entered in default of appearance, defence or defence to counterclaim,
the form of the judgment shall be Form No. 27 of Appendix A.
DATE FROM WHICH JUDGMENT OR ORDER TAKES EFFECT (O.35, r.3)
3. A judgment or order of a Court takes effect from the day when it is pronounced or made,
as the case may be, unless the Court otherwise orders.
ORDERS GENERALLY NEED NOT BE DRAWN UP (O.35, r.4)
4. Unless, the Court by which an order is made directs that it be drawn up, no order need be
drawn up.
DRAWING UP AND ENTRY OF DEFAULT JUDGMENTS (O.35, r.5)
5. (1) A party seeking to enter judgment in default of appearance, defence or defence to
counterclaim must draw up the judgment and present it at the registry of the Court in which
the suit was commenced.
(2) Where judgment is entered in default of appearance the plaintiff must present with the
judgment the writ, or notice of the writ, indorsed in accordance with paragraph (4) of Rule 1
of Order 8 or bearing a certificate in accordance with paragraph (5) of Rule 4 of Order 9.
(3) Where judgment is entered in default of defence or defence to a counter-claim, the party
entering judgment must present with the judgment an affidavit that no defence or defence to
counterclaim, as the case may be, has been served on him.
(4) A default judgment, if in order, shall be filed by an officer of the registry and a duplicate
thereof shall be returned, sealed with the seal of the Court, to the party who presented it for
entry.
________
ORDER 36
ENFORCEMENT OF JUDGMENTS AND ORDER
APPLICATION FOR ENFORCEMENT (O.36, r.1)
1. (1) A decree-holder wishing to enforce the judgment or order of a Court shall make
application ex parte by summons -
(a) where the method of enforcement sought is the arrest and detention of any person
or the attachment of the salary or wages of the judgment debtor, for leave to issue a
summons under section 32 of the Act or a notice to show cause under Rule 10, as the
case may be;
(b) where the method of enforcement sought is the attachment of debts, for a
garnishee order nisi; and
(c) in any other case, for an order for the issue of the process of the Court appropriate
to the method of enforcement sought:
Provided that application for the appointment of a receiver shall not be made ex parte.
(2) Every application made under paragraph (1) shall be heard and determined -
(a) in the Supreme Court, by the Registrar; and
(b) in the District Court, by the resident magistrate.
(3) Evidence in proceedings under this rule shall be by affidavit.
ORDER FOR ENFORCEMENT AND LEAVE TO ISSUE SUMMONS (O.36, r.2)
2. The Registrar or the resident magistrate, as the case may be, may subject to the provisions
of Rule 6 order the issue of any one or more of the types of process sought and such order
may be in addition to the granting of leave to issue a summons or notice to show cause.
PREPARATION OF WRIT, SUMMONS, ETC. (O.36, r.3)
3. The party wishing to have a judgment or order enforced shall be responsible for the
preparation of any writ, summons or other process which the Registrar or resident magistrate
may order to be issued, and for its presentation at the registry of the Court for issue.
ALL PROCESS TO ENFORCE JUDGMENTS, ETC. TO BE SIGNED AND SEALED
(O.36, r.4)
4. Every process issued by a Court to enforce a judgment or order shall be signed by the
Registrar or the resident magistrate, as the case may be, and bear the seal of the Court.
FORM OF PROCESS (O.36, r.5)
5. Process issued by a Court to enforce a judgment or order shall be in the form of one or
other of Forms Nos. 28 to 33, inclusive, of Appendix A or as near thereto as may be
appropriate to the circumstances of the case.
OPPRESSIVE ENFORCEMENT NOT TO BE ORDERED (O. 36, r.6)
6. The Registrar or the resident magistrate, as the case may be, hearing an application for an
order for enforcement of a judgment or order shall have due regard for the proper interests of
the decree-holder but shall not order enforcement by sale of land or by the issue of a
summons to the judgment-debtor to attend and be examined unless he is satisfied that no
other method of enforcement is likely to be successful or that the cost of other methods of
enforcement available would be likely to be excessive.
ENFORCEMENT MAY BE STAYED WHERE PAYMENT IS MADE BY
INSTALMENTS (O.36, r.7)
7. (1) A Court may order at the time of a judgment or order for the payment of money, or at
any thereafter upon application by the judgment-debtor made by summons that the money
may be paid by instalments and that, for so long as the instalments are paid on or before their
due dates, the judgment or order may not be enforced without, special leave of the Court.
(2) Special leave may be granted only where the Court is satisfied that, if the judgment or
order is not enforced forthwith, it is likely that it will not be discharged.
(3) If no judge is present in Nauru, an application to the Supreme Court for an order under
paragraph (1) or for special leave under the last preceding paragraph may be heard and
determined by the Registrar.
ENFORCEMENT MAY BE DELAYED OR MADE CONDITIONAL (O.36, r.8)
8. (1) A Court may for good reason order at the time of a judgment or order, or at any time
thereafter upon application by the judgment-debtor made by summons, that the judgment or
order is not to be enforced before a specified date or event or before the decree-holder has
complied with a specified condition.
(2) An order made under the last preceding paragraph may be revoked by the Court at any
time for good cause.
(3). If no judge is present in Nauru, an order in proceedings in the Supreme Court may be
made under paragraph (1), or revoked under paragraph (2), by the Registrar.
ENFORCEMENT BY SALE OF PROPERTY (O.36, r.9)
9. (1) Where property is sold in order to enforce a judgment or order of a Court, the sale shall
be by public auction not less than seven days after notice of the date, time and place of the
auction has been given by notice in the Gazette, unless the Court, upon application by the
Director of Police or any party to the suit made by summon, otherwise orders.
(2) The proceeds of the sale shall be paid by the Director of Police into the registry of the
Court out of which the process was issued and the Registrar or the Clerk, as the case may be,
shall pay them into the Courts Trust Fund to be held therein until payment out is sought by
the decree-holder.
ENFORCEMENT BY ATTACHMENT OF SALARY OR WAGES (O.36, r.10)
10. (1) Where leave is granted under Rule 1 to do so, a degree-holder may cause a notice in
Form No. 34 of Appendix A to be issued out of the registry of the Court inviting a judgment-
debtor to attend in chambers and show cause why a judgment or order of that Court should
not be enforced by the attachment of his salary or wages.
(2) A notice issued under the last preceding paragraph shall set out the details of the
judgment-debtor's employer and of his salary or wages, if they are known to the decree-
holder, and shall be served on the judgment-debtor personally not less than two days before
the date on which the judgment-debtor's attendance is invited.
(3) If the judgment-debtor does not attend on the date and at the time specified in the notice,
he shall be taken to admit any details of his employer and of his salary or wages set out
therein and not to wish to show cause why his salary or wages should not be attached.
(4) If the judgment-debtor attends on the date and at the time specified in the notice, he may
adduce such evidence relevant to his salary or wages and his financial commitments as he
thinks fit, and the decree-holder may adduce evidence of a similar nature if he wishes.
(5) Unless the judgment-debtor shows cause why his salary or wages should not be attached,
the Court shall order, subject to the provisions of paragraph (g) of the proviso to subsection
(1) of section 36 of the Act and to the provisions of any other written law, such attachment to
the extent which it thinks fit, having regard to the judgment-debtor's other commitments; and,
where his salary or wages are already subject to an attachment order in another suit, the Court
may order that the new order shall not take effect until the expiry of that other order.
(6) Where an order for the attachment of a judgment-debtor's salary or wages is made under
the last preceding paragraph, the decree-holder shall cause a notice in Form No. 35 of
Appendix A to the employer concerned to be issued out of the registry of the Court and to be
served on the employer.
(7) An employer who is served with a notice to attach the salary or wages of any person
employed by him shall, while the judgment-debtor is employed by him and until such date as
is specified in the notice, on each pay day, commencing with the pay day next but one after
the service upon him of the notice, deduct from the salary or wages of the judgment-debtor
the amount specified in the notice and pay it forthwith into the registry of the Court and, if he
fails to do so, shall be personally liable to the decree-holder for any amount not so deducted
and paid in.
(8) All amounts paid into the registry under the last preceding paragraph shall be paid by the
Registrar or the Clerk, as the case may be, into the Courts Trust Fund to be held therein until
payment out is sought by the decree-holder.
ENFORCEMENT BY ATTACHMENT OF DEBTS (O.36, r.11)
11. (1) Where a garnishee order nisi is made under Rule 1, the decree-holder shall draw it up
in Form No. 36 of Appendix A and present it with three copies at the registry of the Court to
be signed and sealed; after being signed and sealed the three copies, sealed with the seal of
the Court, shall be returned to the decree-holder.
(2) A sealed copy of the order nisi shall be served, not less than 7 days before the date
specified therein for the further consideration of the matter, on the person alleged to be
indebted to the judgment-debtor, hereafter in this rule called "the garnishee", and, unless the
Court otherwise orders, on the judgment-debtor.
(3) Upon service of the copy of the order on the garnishee, any debt specified therein or so
much of any such debt as may be so specified shall be bound in the hands of the garnishee.
(4) If the garnishee does not attend on the date and at the time specified in the order for the
further consideration of the matter or if he does not dispute the debt alleged to be owed by
him to the judgment-debtor, the Court may make the garnishee order absolute, and such order
may then be enforced against the garnishee in the same manner as any other order of the
Court for payment of money.
(5) Where on the further consideration of the matter the garnishee disputes liability to pay the
alleged debt to the judgment-debtor, the Court may summarily determine the question at
issue or order that it be tried in such manner as it thinks fit.
(6) Where it appears to the Court that some person other than the judgment-debtor may be
entitled to the whole or any part of the debt sought to be attached, it may give notice to him in
Form No. 51 of Appendix A and, if he attends in response to such notice shall hear him as to
the nature and particulars of his claim after hearing him, the Court may summarily determine
the questions at issue between claimants or order that they be tried in such manner as it thinks
fit.
(7) Any payment made by a garnishee in compliance with an order absolute under this rule,
and any execution levied against him in respect thereof, shall be a valid discharge of his
liability to the judgment-debtor to the extent of the amount paid or levied, notwithstanding
that the garnishee proceedings are subsequently set aside or the judgment order enforced
thereby is reversed.
(8) Unless the Court otherwise directs, the costs of proceedings under this rule or incidental
thereto shall be paid to the decree-holder out of the money recovered under the garnishee
order and in priority to the judgment debt.
(9) All amounts paid into the registry in compliance with an order made under this rule shall
be paid by the Registrar or the Clerk, as the case may be, into the Courts Trust Fund to be
held therein until payment out is sought by the decree-holder.
MONEY IN COURT (O.36, r.12)
12. (1) Where money is standing to the credit of the judgment-debtor in court, the decree-
holder shall not be entitled to take garnishee proceedings in respect of that money but may
apply to the Court by summons for an order that the money or so much thereof as is sufficient
to satisfy the judgment or order sought to be enforced and the costs of the application be paid
to the decree-holder.
(2) On issuing a summons under this rule the applicant must serve a copy thereof on the
Registrar and the money to which the application relates shall not be paid out of court until
after the determination of the application.
If the application is dismissed, the applicant must give notice of that fact to the Registrar.
(3) Unless the Court otherwise directs, the summons must be served on the judgment-debtor
at least 7 days before the day named therein for the hearing of it.
(4) Subject to Rule 24 of Order 48 the Court hearing an application under this rule may make
such order with respect to the money in court as it thinks just.
CERTAIN OF SUPREME COURT MAY EXERCISE BY REGISTRAR IN ABSENCE
OF JUDGE (O.36, r.13)
13. The powers of the Supreme Court to order enforcement of any of its judgment or orders
by the arrest and detention of the judgment-debtor may be exercised by the Registrar, if no
judge is present in Nauru.
_______
ORDER 37
COMMITTAL
COMMITTAL FOR CONTEMPT OF COURT (O.37, r.1)
1. (1) A judge may exercise the powers of the Supreme Court of committal for contempt of
its authority either upon his own motion or upon application made ex parte by any interested
person by summons.
(2) A judge may exercise the powers of the Supreme Court of committal for contempt of the
authority of the District Court or the Family Court upon written notification by the resident
magistrate or application made ex parte by any interested person by summon.
(3) Unless the person alleged to be in contempt is present in the Supreme Court, a summons
may, if the judge thinks fit, be issued requiring the attendance of that person to answer the
allegation:
Provided that, where the judge has reason to believe that that person will not attend and that
the interests of justice require that the matter be dealt with without delay, he may issue a
warrant for that person to be arrested and brought before Court.
(4) No person shall be required to answer an allegation of contempt of court where the
contempt is alleged only to consist of disobedience to an order which could be enforced in a
manner authorised by section 28 of the Act.
HEARING OF CONTEMPT PROCEEDINGS GENERALLY TO BE IN OPEN
COURT (O.37, r.2)
2. (1) Unless the contempt is alleged to consist of disobedience of an order of the Family
Court or the judge considers that in the interests of the administration of justice or for reasons
of national security the contempt proceedings should be heard in private, they shall be heard
in open court.
(2) Where contempt proceedings are heard in private and a committal order is made, the
judge shall state in open court -
(a) the name of the person committed;
(b) in general terms the nature of the contempt in respect of which the committal
order is being made; and
(c) if he is being committed for a fixed period, the length of that period.
POWER TO SUSPEND EXECUTION OF COMMITTAL ORDER (O.37, r.3)
3. The Supreme Court may by order direct that the execution of an order of committal shall
be suspended for such period or on such terms or conditions as it may specify.
DISCHARGE OF PERSON COMMITTED (O.37, r.4)
4. The Supreme Court may, on the application of any person committed to prison or any
contempt of court, discharge him.
SAVING FOR OTHER POWERS (O.37, r.5)
5. Nothing in the preceding provisions of this Order shall be taken as affecting the powers of
the Supreme Court to make an order requiring a person guilty of contempt of court, or a
person punishable by virtue of any enactment in like manner as if he had been guilty of
contempt of the Supreme Court, to pay a fine or to give security for his good behaviour, and
those provisions, so far as applicable and with the necessary modifications, shall apply in
relation to an application for such an order as they apply in relation to an application for an
order of committal.
______
ORDER 38
APPLICATIONS FOR ORDERS OF MANDAMUS PROHIBITION, CERTIORARI,
ETC.
NO SUIT FOR ORDER OF MANDAMUS, ETC., WITHOUT LEAVE (O.38, r.1)
1. (1) No suit for an order of mandamus, prohibition or certiorari shall be commenced unless
leave therefore has been granted in accordance with this rule.
(2) An application for such leave must be made by originating summons ex parte to the
Registrar and must be supported by a statement setting out the name and description of the
applicant, the relief sought and the grounds on which it is sought, and by affidavits, to be
filed before the application is made, verifying the facts relied on.
(3) In granting leave the Registrar shall direct upon whom the writ of summons is to be
served.
(4) The Registrar may, in granting leave, impose such terms as to costs and as to giving
security as he thinks fit.
(5) The grant of leave under this rule to commence a suit for an order of prohibition or an
order of certiorari shall, if the Registrar so directs, operate as a stay of the proceedings in
question until the determination of the application or until the Court otherwise orders.
(6) Where an application for leave under this rule is refused by the Registrar, the applicant
may make a fresh application for such leave to a judge and such application shall be heard
only by a judge.
(7) An application made to a judge by virtue of the last preceding paragraph must be made
within 8 days after the Registrar's refusal to give leave or, if no sittings of the Supreme Court
are held within that period, on the first day of the next such sittings.
TIME FOR APPLYING FOR LEAVE LIMITED IN CERTAIN CASES (O.38, r.2)
2. Leave shall not be granted to commence a suit for an order of certiorari to remove any
judgement, order, conviction or other proceeding into the Supreme Court for the purpose of
its being quashed, unless the application for leave is made within 3 months after the date of
the proceeding or such other period, if any, as may be prescribed by any enactment or, except
where a period is so prescribed, the delay is accounted for to the satisfaction of the Registrar;
and where the proceeding is subject to appeal and a time is limited by law for the bringing of
the appeal, the Registrar may adjourn the application for leave until the appeal is determine or
the time for appealing has expired.
MODE OF APPLYING FOR AN ORDER OF MANDAMUS, ETC. (O.38, r.3)
3. (1) Where leave has been granted to commence a suit for an order of mandamus,
prohibition or certiorari, the suit for such order must be commenced by a writ of summons in
Form No. 37 of Appendix A which, or a notice thereof if service is made outside Nauru, must
be served on every person on whom the Registrar has directed that it is to be served together
with a copy of the statement and affidavits referred to in paragraph (2) of Rule 1 which were
presented in support of the application for leave to commence the suit.
(2) Any person on whom the writ is served must, if he wishes to be heard in the suit, enter an
appearance within 8 days of such service, or such further period as the Registrar may direct
or the Court allow.
(3) There shall be no pleadings in a suit for an order of mandamus, prohibition or certiorari.
(4) At any time after appearances have been entered by all the persons served or the period
for entering appearance has elapsed, the applicant for the order shall cause a notice of motion
for the grant of the order to be issued out of the registry of the Court and served on all
persons served in the writ who have entered an appearance and, where it relates to any
proceedings in or before a Court and the object is either to compel the Court or an officer
thereof to do any act in relation to the proceedings or to quash there or any order made
therein, the notice or summons must be served on the Clerk of that Court.
NO GROUNDS TO BE RELIED UPON OTHER THAN THOSE IN STATEMENT
(O.38, r.4)
4. (1) Subject to the next following paragraph, no grounds shall be relied upon or any relief
sought at the hearing of the motion or summons except the grounds and relief set out in the
statement in support of the application for leave under Rule 1.
(2) The Court or judge may on the hearing of the motion allow the said statement to be
amended, and may allow further affidavits to be used if they deal with new matter arising out
of any affidavit of any other party to the application, and where the applicant intends to ask to
be allowed to amend his statement or use further affidavits, he must give notice of his
intention and of any proposed amendment of his statement to every other person who has
entered an appearance in the suit and, where applicable, to the Clerk of the. District Court or
the Family Court, and must supply copies of such further affidavits.
(3) Every party to the application must supply to every other party copies of the affidavits he
proposes to use at the hearing.
RIGHT TO BE HEARD IN OPPOSITION (O.38, r.5)
5. On the hearing of any motion under Rule 3, any person who desires to be heard in
opposition to the motion or summons and who has entered an appearance in the suit or,
although not a person on whom the writ of summons has been served, appears to the Court or
judge to be a proper person to be heard shall be heard.
ORDER OF CERTIORARI TO QUASH PROCEEDINGS (O.38, r.6)
6. Where an order of certiorari is made in any suit or an order of certiorari to remove any
proceedings into the Supreme Court for the purpose of their being quashed the order shall
direct that the proceedings shall be quashed forthwith on their removal into the Supreme
Court.
MODIFICATION IN CASE OF CERTIORARI OR PROHIBITION TO DISTRICT
COURT OR FAMILY COURT (O.38, r.7)
7. The provisions of this Order relating to certiorari and prohibition shall, in the case of
certiorari to remove proceedings from the District Court, the Family Court or any other
inferior court of civil jurisdiction for trial in the Supreme Court or in the case of prohibition
to any such Court, have effect subject to the following modifications -
(a) the application for leave may be made to a judge in chambers; and
(b) the judge hearing the application for leave may in special circumstances make in
the first instance an order of certiorari or prohibition, as the case may be.
SAVING FOR PERSON ACTING IN OBEDIENCE TO MANDAMUS (O.38, r.8)
8. No suit or proceeding shall be begun or prosecuted against any person in respect of
anything done in obedience to an order of mandamus.
APPLICATION TO RESTRAIN PERSON FROM ACTING IN AN OFFICE IN
WHICH HE IS NOT ENTITLED TO ACT (O.38, r.9)
9. (1) The procedure in applications under section 9 of the Administration, of Justice
(Miscellaneous Provisions) Act, 1938, of England in its application to Nauru shall be the
same as in applications for an order of mandamus and Rules 1, 3, 4 and 5 shall apply so far as
applicable to such applications.
(2) An application under the said section 9 shall not be granted if the respondent has acted in
the office in question for the last six years before proceedings under that section are begun,
but -
(a) nothing in this rule shall restrict the power of the Supreme Court to refuse such an
application on the ground of undue delay;
(b) the applicant may, in answer to a plea under this rule, set up any forfeiture,
surrender or avoidance of the office by the respondent within the said six years.
_______
ORDER 39
APPEALS FROM REGISTRAR
APPEALS FROM DECISIONS OF REGISTRAR TO JUDGE IN CHAMBERS (O.39,
r.1)
1. (1) An appeal shall lie to a judge in chambers from any order or decision of the Registrar.
(2) The appeal shall be brought by serving on every other party to the proceedings in which
the order or decision was given or made a notice to attend before the judge on a day specified
in the notice.
(3) Unless the Court otherwise orders, the notice must be issued within 5 days after the order
or decision appealed against was given or made and served not less than 2 clear days before
the day fixed for hearing the appeal.
(4) Except so far as the Court may otherwise direct, an appeal under this rule shall not operate
as a stay of the proceedings in which the appeal is brought.
________
ORDER 40
COSTS
AMOUNT OF COSTS MAY BE FIXED AT TRIAL OR HEARING (O.40, r.1)
1. A Court may at the trial of a suit or the hearing of any proceedings therein, other than
proceedings taken ex parte, fix the amount of the costs of and incidental to the suit, or to the
trial or hearing, which are ordered therein but shall not do so if any party thereto informs the
Court at that time that he wishes the costs to be taxed.
TAXATION OF COSTS IN SUIT (O.40, r.2)
2. (1) Where in any suit a Court orders the payment of costs, the amount of such costs shall,
unless it is fixed by the Court under Rule 1, agreed to by the parties under Rule 3 or set by
Rule 4, be determined by taxation of the bill of costs of the party to whom the costs are to be
paid.
(2) Costs shall be taxed -
(a) in the Supreme Court, by the Registrar; and
(b) in the District Court, by the resident magistrate or, if for any reason the resident
magistrate is unable to undertake the taxation, a magistrate nominated by the resident
magistrate to do so.
(3) The party seeking to have his bill of costs taxed shall present the bill at the registry of the
Court and obtain an appointment for the bill to be taxed. He shall then prepare and serve on
every other party to the suit affected by the order for the payment of such costs, other than a
party who has not entered an appearance a notice in Form No. 38 of Appendix A stating the
time of the appointment, together with a copy of the bill of costs. The notice shall be served
not less than 2 days before the date appointed for the taxation.
(4) In taxing costs the Registrar, resident magistrate or other magistrate, as the case may be,
shall comply with any directions given by the Court in that regard at the time when the costs
were awarded but otherwise shall allow costs for professional services only within any scales
prescribed from time to time, together with proper disbursements.
(5) Any party dissatisfied with an order of the Registrar made upon the taxation of costs in
proceedings in the Supreme Court may appeal, within 7 days of such order being made, to a
judge in chambers.
PARTIES MAY AGREE TO AMOUNT OF COSTS (O.40, r.3)
3. Where in any suit the payment of costs has been ordered and any party presents at the
registry of the Court a written agreement as to the amount of such costs signed by himself
and all the other parties affected by the order, the agreement shall be filed and shall be
binding on all the parties who have signed it, unless the Court for special reasons, upon the
application of any party, orders otherwise.
FIXED COSTS (O.40, r.4)
4. (1) Where any suit for a liquidated demand has been commenced, whether or not the writ
of summons or originating summons has been served, and the amount of the claim is paid to
the plaintiff by any defendant before judgment is entered or an appearance is entered, or, in
the case of an originating summons under section 14 of the Act, before the day on which the
defendant is required to attend for the hearing of the claim, the plaintiff shall be entitled to
recover as costs such amount as is prescribed in Part 1 of Appendix B and may enter
judgment therefore, provided that a demand for the payment of such amount as costs has been
included in the writ of summons or the originating summons, as the case may be.
(2) Where in any suit for a debt or a liquidated demand only final judgment has been entered
in default of appearance, defence or defence to counterclaim, the party who has entered the
judgment shall be entitled to recover as costs such amount as is prescribed in Part 2 of
Appendix B and may enter judgment therefore.
COSTS MAY BE DEALT WITH AT ANY STAGE OF PROCEEDINGS (O.40, r.5)
5. Costs may be dealt with by a Court at any stage of a suit or of proceeding therein or after
the conclusion thereof. Any order for the payment of any costs may, if the Court thinks fit,
require the costs to be paid forthwith, notwithstanding that the proceedings have not been
concluded.
SPECIAL MATTERS TO BE TAKEN INTO ACCOUNT IN EXERCISING
DISCRETION (O.40, r.6)
6. A Court in exercising its discretion as to costs shall, to such extent, if any, as may be
appropriate in the circumstances, take into account -
(a) any such offer of contribution as is mentioned in Rule 11 of Order 13 which is
brought to its attention in pursuance of a reserved right to do so;
(b) any payment of money into court and the amount of such payment.
COSTS ARISING FROM MISCONDUCT OR NEGLECT (O.40, r.7)
7. (1) Where in any cause or matter any thing is done or omission is made improperly or
unnecessarily by or on behalf of a party, the Court may direct that any costs to that party in
respect of it shall not be allowed to him and that any costs occasioned by it to other parties
shall be paid by him to them.
(2) Without prejudice to the generality of the last preceding paragraph the Court shall for the
purpose of that paragraph have regard in particular to the following matters, that is to say -
(a) the omission to do any thing of which would have been calculated to save costs;
(b) the doing of any thing calculated to occasion, or in a manner or at a time
calculated to occasion, unnecessary costs;
(c) any unnecessary delay in the proceedings.
(3) The Supreme Court may, instead of giving a direction under paragraph (1) in relation to
any thing done or omission made, direct the Registrar to inquire into it and, if it appears to
him that such a direction as aforesaid should have been given in relation to it, to act as if the
appropriate direction had been given.
(4) The taxing officer shall, in relation to anything done or omission made in the course of
taxation and in relation to any failure to procure taxation, have the same power to disallow or
to award costs as the Court has under paragraph (1) to direct that costs shall be disallowed to
or paid by any party.
(5) Where a party entitled to costs fails to procure or fails to proceed with taxation, the taxing
officer, in order to prevent any other parties being prejudiced by that failure, may allow the
party so entitled a nominal or other sum for costs or may certify the failure and the costs of
the other parties.
PERSONAL LIABILITY OF BARRISTER AND SOLICITOR OR PLEADER FOR
COSTS (O.40, r.8)
8. (1) Subject to the following provisions of this rule, where in any proceedings costs are
incurred improperly or without reasonable cause or are wasted by undue delay or by any
other misconduct or default, the Court may make against any barrister and solicitor or pleader
whom it considers to be responsible, whether personally or through a servant or agent, an
order-
(a) disallowing the costs as between the barrister and solicitor or pleader and his
client; and
(b) directing the barrister and solicitor or pleader to repay to his client costs which the
client has been ordered to pay to other parties to the proceedings; or
(c) directing the barrister and solicitor or pleader personally to indemnify such other
parties against costs payable by them.
(2) No order under this rule shall be made against a barrister and solicitor or pleader unless he
has been given a reasonable opportunity to appear before the Court and show cause why the
order should not be made, except where any proceeding in Court or in chambers cannot
conveniently proceed, and fails or is adjourned without useful progress being made, -
(a) because of the failure of the barrister and solicitor or pleader to attend in person or
by a proper representative; or
(b) because of the failure of the barrister and solicitor or pleader to deliver any
document for the use of the Court which ought to have been delivered or to be
prepared with any proper evidence or account or otherwise to proceed.
(3) Before making an order under this rule the Supreme Court may, if it thinks fit, refer the
matter, except in the cases excepted from the last preceding paragraph or in the case of undue
delay in any proceedings under an order or judgment as to which the Registrar has reported to
the Court, to the Registrar for inquiry and report and direct the barrister and solicitor or
pleader in the first place to show cause before the Registrar.
(4) The Court may direct that notice of any proceedings or order against a barrister and
solicitor or pleader under this rule shall be given to his client in such manner as may be
specified in the direction.
(5) Where in any proceedings before a taxing officer the barrister and solicitor or pleader
representing any party is guilty of neglect or delay or puts any other party to any unnecessary
expense in relation to those proceedings, the taxing officer may direct the barrister and
solicitor or pleader to pay costs personally to any of the parties to those proceedings and
where any barrister and solicitor or pleader fails to present his bill of costs, with the
documents required by this Order, for taxation within the time fixed by or under this Order or
otherwise delays or impedes the taxation, then, unless the taxing officer otherwise directs, the
barrister and solicitor or pleader shall not be allowed the fees to which he would otherwise be
entitled for drawing his bill of costs and for attending the taxation.
(6) If, on the taxation of costs to be paid out of a fund, one sixth or more of the amount of the
bill for those costs is taxed off, the barrister and solicitor or pleader whose bill it is shall not
be allowed the fees to which he would otherwise be entitled for drawing the bill and for
attending the taxation.
(7) In any proceeding before a referee in which the party by whom the fees are payable is
represented by a barrister and solicitor or pleader, if the fees or any part of the fees payable
are not paid as prescribed, the Court may, on the application of the Secretary for Justice by
summons, order the barrister and solicitor or pleader personally to pay that amount in the
manner so prescribed and to pay the costs of the Secretary for Justice of the application.
ORDER FOR PART ONLY OF TAXED COSTS (O.40, r.9)
9. (1) Subject to this Order, where by or under these Rules or any order or direction of the
Court costs are to be paid to any person, that person shall be entitled to his taxed costs.
(2) The Court in awarding costs to any person may direct that, instead of taxed costs, that
person shall be entitled to a proportion specified in the direction of the taxed costs or to the
taxed costs from or up to a stage of the proceedings so specified.
SUPPLEMENTARY POWERS OF REGISTRAR, ETC. (O.40, r.10)
10. A taxing officer may, in the discharge of his functions with respect to the taxation of
costs, -
(a) take an account of any dealings in money made in connection with the payment of
the costs being taxed, if the Court so directs;
(b) require any party represented jointly with any other party in any proceedings
before him to be separately represented;
(c) examine any witness in those proceedings;
(d) direct the production of any document which may be relevant in connection with
those proceedings.
EXTENSION, ETC., OF TIME (O.40, r.11)
11. (1) A taxing officer may -
(a) extend the period within which a party is required by or under his Order to begin
proceedings for taxation or to do anything in or in connection with proceedings before
him;
(b) where no period is specified by or under this Order or by the Court for the doing
of anything in or in connection with such proceedings, specify the period within
which the thing is to be done.
(2) Where an order of the Court specifies a period within which anything is to be done by or
before a taxing officer then, unless the Court otherwise directs, the taxing officer may from
time to time extend the period so specified on such terms, if any, as he think just.
(3) A taxing officer may extend any such period as is referred to in the preceding provisions
of this rule although the application for extension is not made until the expiration of that
period.
INTERIM CERTIFICATES (O.40, r.12)
12. (1) A taxing officer may from time to time in the course of the taxation of any costs by
him issue an interim certificate for any part of those costs which has been taxed.
(2) If, in the course of the taxation of the bill of a barrister and solicitor or pleader to his own
client, it appears to the taxing officer that in any event the barrister and solicitor or pleader
will be liable in connection with that bill to pay money to the client, he may from time to
time issue an interim certificate specifying an amount which in his opinion is payable by the
barrister and solicitor or pleader to his client.
(3) On the filing of a certificate issued under the last preceding paragraph the Court may
order the amount specified therein to be paid forthwith to the client or into court.
POWER OF REGISTRAR, ETC., WHERE PARTY BOTH ENTITLED TO RECEIVE
AND LIABLE TO PAY COSTS (O.40, r.13)
13. Where a party entitled to be paid costs is also liable to pay costs, the taxing officer may -
(a) tax the costs which that party is liable to pay and set off the amount allowed
against the amount he is entitled to be paid and direct payment of any balance; or
(b) delay the issue of a certificate for the costs he is entitled to be paid until he has
paid or tendered the amount he is liable to pay.
PROVISIONS AS TO BILLS OF COSTS (O.40, r.14)
14. (1) In any bill of costs the professional charges and the disbursements must be entered in
separate columns and every column must be cast before the bill is left for taxation.
(2) Before a bill of costs is left for taxation it must be indorsed with -
(a) the name or firm and business address of the barrister and solicitor or pleader
whose bill it is' and
(b) if the barrister and solicitor or pleader is the agent of another barrister and
solicitor, with the name or firm and business address of that other barrister and
solicitor.
PROVISIONS AS TO TAXATION PROCEEDINGS (O.40, r.15)
15. (1) if any party entitled to be heard in any taxation proceedings does not attend at the time
appointed for the taxation, the taxing officer, if satisfied by affidavit or otherwise that the
party had due notice of the time appointed, may proceed with the taxation.
(2) The taxing officer by whom any taxation proceedings are being conducted may, if he
thinks it necessary to do so, adjourn those proceedings from time to time.
SCALE OF COSTS (O.40, r.16)
16. Scales of fees chargeable by barristers and solicitors and by pleaders contained in the
written laws of Nauru relating to legal practitioners shall, when made, be applied in the
taxation of the costs, unless in any suit the Court for special reasons directs otherwise.
POWERS OF REGISTRAR, ETC., TAXING COSTS PAYABLE OUT OF FUND
(O.40, r.17)
17. (1) Where any costs are to be paid out of a fund the taxing officer may give directions as
to the parties who are entitled to attend on the taxation of those costs and may disallow the
costs of attendance of any party not entitled to attend by virtue of the directions and whose
attendance he considers unnecessary.
(2) Where the Court has directed that the bill of costs of a barrister and solicitor or pleader be
taxed for the purpose of being paid out of a fund the taxing officer by whom the bill is being
taxed may, if he thinks fit, adjourn the taxation for a reasonable period and direct the barrister
and solicitor or pleader to send to any person having an interest in the fund a copy of the bill,
or of any part thereof, free of charge together with a letter containing the following
information, that is to say -
(a) that the bill of costs, a copy of which or of part of which is sent with the letter, has
been referred to a taxing officer for taxation;
(b) the time and place appointed by the taxing officer at which the taxation will be
continued; and
(c) such other information, if any, as the taxing officer may direct.
MEANING OF ''TAXING OFFICER" IN THIS ORDER (O.40, r.18)
18. In this Order "taxing officer" means -
(a) in the Supreme Court, the Registrar; and
(b) in the District Court, the resident magistrate or another magistrate nominated by
the resident magistrate to tax the costs in the proceedings concerned.
_______
ORDER 41
REGISTRY PRACTICE
CONTROL OF PRACTICE AND PROCEDURE OF REGISTRY (O.41, r.1)
1. The Registrar and the resident magistrate respectively shall superintend the business
performed in the registries of the Supreme Court and the District Court and give any
directions which may be required on questions of practice and procedure.
DATE OF FILING TO BE MARKED, ETC. (O.41, r.2)
2. (1) Any document filed in the registry of a Court in any proceedings must be sealed with
the seal of that Court showing the date on which the document was filed.
(2) Particulars of the time of delivery at the registry of any document for filing, the date of
the document and the title of the suit of which the document forms part of the record shall be
entered in books kept in the registry for the purpose.
RIGHT TO INSPECT, ETC., CERTAIN DOCUMENTS FILED IN REGISTRY (O.41,
r.3)
3. (1) Subject to the provisions of any written law restricting the right of access to court
records in certain cases, any person shall, on payment of the prescribed fee, be entitled during
office hours to search for, inspect and take a copy of any of the following documents filed in
the registry of a Court, namely -
(a) the copy of any writ of summons or other originating process;
(b) any judgment or order given or made in court or the copy of any such judgment or
order; and
(c) with the leave of a judge or the Registrar in the Supreme Court or the resident
magistrate in the District Court, which may be granted on an application in writing
made ex parte, any other document.
(2) Nothing in the preceding subsection shall be taken as preventing any party to a suit
searching for, inspecting and taking or bespeaking a copy of any affidavit or other document
filed in the registry in that suit or filed therein before the commencement of that suit but
made with a view to its commencement.
DEPOSIT OF DOCUMENTS (O.41, r.4)
4. Where a Court orders that any documents are to be lodged in court, then, unless the order
directs otherwise, the documents must be deposited in the registry of that Court.
RESTRICTION ON REMOVAL OF DOCUMENTS (O.41, r.5)
5. No document filed in or in the custody of the registry of any Court shall be taken out of
that registry without the leave of the Court unless the document is to be sent to another such
Court.
OFFICE-HOURS (O.41, r.6)
6. The registry of the Supreme Court and the registry of the District Court shall be open to the
public from 8.45 a.m. to 11 a.m. and from 2 p.m. until 4 p.m. on all days other than
Saturdays, Sundays and public holidays.
______
ORDER 42
SERVICE OF DOCUMENTS
WHEN PERSONAL SERVICE REQUIRED (O.42, r.1)
1. (1) Any document which by virtue of these Rules is required to be served on any person
need not be served personally unless the document is one which by an express provision of
these Rules or by order of the Court is required to be so served.
(2) The last preceding paragraph shall not affect the power of the Court under any provision
of these rules to dispense with the requirement for personal service.
PERSONAL SERVICE: HOW EFFECTED (O.42, r.2)
2. Personal service of a document is effected by leaving a copy of the document with the
person to be served and, if so requested by him at the time when it is left, showing him -
(a) in the case where the document is a writ of summons or other originating process,
the original; and
(b) in any other case, the original or an office copy.
PERSONAL SERVICE ON BODY CORPORATE (O.42, r.3)
3. Personal service of a document on a body corporate may, in cases for which provision is
not otherwise made by any written law, be effected by serving it in accordance with Rule 2
on the chairman or president of the body, or the clerk, secretary, treasurer or other similar
officer thereof.
SUBSTITUTED SERVICE (O.42, r.4)
4. (1) If, in the case of any document which by virtue of any provision of these rules is
required to be served personally on any person, it appears to the Court that it is impracticable
for any reason to serve that document personally on that person, the Court may make an order
for substituted service of that document.
(2) An application for an order for substituted service may be made ex parte by summons
supported by an affidavit stating the facts on which the application is founded.
(3) Substituted service of a document, in relation to which an order is made under this rule, is
effected by taking such steps as the Court may direct to bring the document to the notice of
the person to be served.
(4) The power of the Supreme Court to order substituted service may be exercise by the
Registrar and the like power of the District Court may be exercised by the resident magistrate
in chambers.
ORDINARY SERVICE: HOW EFFECTED (O.42, r.5)
5.(1) Service of any document, not being a document which by virtue of any provision of
these Rules is required to be served personally, may be effected -
(a) by leaving the document at the proper address of the person to be served;
(b) in such manner as is permitted by section 66 of the Interpretation Act 1971;
(c) in such other manner as the Court may direct.
(2) For the purposes of this rule, and of section 66 of the Interpretation Act 1971 in its
application to this rule, the proper address of any person on whom a document is to be served
in accordance with this rule shall be the address for service of that person, but if at the time
when service is effected that person has no address for service his proper address for the
purposes aforesaid shall be -
(a) in any case, the business address of the barrister and solicitor or pleader, if any,
who is acting for him in the proceedings in connection with which service of the
document in question is to be effected;
(b) in the case of a natural person, his usual or last known address;
(c) in the case of natural persons who are suing or being sued in the name of a firm,
the principal or last known place of business of the firm within the jurisdiction; or
(d) in the case of a body corporate, the registered or principal office of the body.
(3) Nothing in this rule shall be taken as prohibiting the personal service of any document or
as affecting any enactment which provides for the manner in which documents may be served
on bodies corporate.
SERVICE ON PRESIDENT, ETC., (O.42, r.6)
6. Where for the purpose of any proceedings in the Supreme Court or the District Court any
document is required by these Rules or any other written law to be served on the President,
the Cabinet, a Minister or a public officer in his official capacity, it shall be served by
delivering it at the office of the Secretary for Justice.
EFFECT OF SERVICE AFTER CERTAIN HOURS (O.42, r.7)
7. Any document other than a writ of summons or other originating process, service of which
is effected under Rule 2 or under sub-paragraph (a) of Rule 5 (1) after 4 o'clock in the
afternoon of any weekday or on a Saturday, Sunday or a public holiday shall, for the purpose
of computing any period of time after service of that document, be deemed to have been
served on the day next following after the day on which it is served which is not a Saturday,
Sunday or public holiday.
AFFIDAVIT OF SERVICE (O.42, r.8)
8. An affidavit of service of any document must state by whom the document was served, the
day of the week and the date on which it was served, where it was served and how.
NO SERVICE REQUIRED IN CERTAIN CASES (O.42, r.9)
9. Where by virtue of these Rules any document is required to be served on any person but is
not required to be served personally, and at the time when service is to effected that person is
in default as to entry of appearance or has no address for service the document need not be
served on that person unless the Court otherwise directs or any of these Rules otherwise
expressly provides.
______
ORDER 43
PAPER, PRINTING, NOTICES AND COPIES
QUALITY AND SIZE OF PAPER (O.43, r.1)
1. Unless the nature of the document renders it impracticable, every document prepared by a
party for use in any Court must be on paper of durable quality, approximately 13 inches long,
by 8 inches wide, having a margin, not less than 1½ inches wide, to be left blank on the left
side of the face of the paper and on the right side of the reverse: Provided that paper
approximately 10 inches long by 8 inches wide may be used where the whole of the
document can be produced on one side of the paper.
REGULATIONS AS TO PRINTING, ETC. (O.43, r.2)
2. (1) Except where these Rules otherwise provide, every document prepared by a party for
use in any Court must be produced by one of the following means, that is to say, printing,
writing (which must be clear and legible) and typewriting otherwise than by means of a
carbon, and may be produced partly by one of those means and partly by another or others of
them.
(2) For the purpose of these Rules a document shall be deemed to be printed if it is produced
by type lithography or stencil duplicating.
(3) Any print or type used in producing a document for use as aforesaid must be such as to
give a clear and legible impression and must be not smaller than 11 point type for printing or
elite type for type lithography, stencil duplicating or typewriting.
(4) Any document produced by a photographic or similar process giving a positive and
permanent representation free from blemishes shall, to the extent that it contains a facsimile
of any printed, written or typewritten matter, be treated for the purposes of these Rules as if it
were printed, written or typewritten, as the case may be.
(5) Any notice required by these Rules may not be given orally except with the leave of the
Court.
COPIES OF DOCUMENTS FOR OTHER PARTY (O.43, r.3)
3. (1) Where a document prepared by a party for use in any Court is printed the party by
whom it was prepared must, on receiving a written request from any other party entitled to a
copy of that document and on payment of the proper charges, supply him with such number
of copies thereof, not exceeding 10, as may be specified in the request.
(2) Where a document prepared by a party for use in any Court is written or typewritten, the
party by whom it was prepared must, on receiving a written request from any other party
entitled to a copy of it, not being a party on whom it has been served, supply him with one
copy of it and, where the document in question is an affidavit, of any document exhibited to
it.
The copy must be ready for delivery within 48 hours after a written request for it, together
with an undertaking to pay the proper charges, is received and must be supplied thereafter on
payment of those charges.
REQUIREMENT AS TO COPIES (O.43, r.4)
4. (1) For the purposes of these Rules, a copy may be produced from an original document by
a photographic or similar process and the provisions of paragraph (4) of Rule 2 shall apply,
mutatis mutandis, to every such copy.
(2) Before a copy of a document is supplied to a party under these Rules, it must be indorsed
with the name, and address of the party or barrister and solicitor or pleader by whom it was
supplied.
(3) The party by whom a copy is supplied under Rule 3, or, if he sues or appears by a
barrister and solicitor or pleader, his barrister and solicitor or pleader, shall be answerable for
the copy being a true copy of the original or of an office copy, as the case may be.
_______
ORDER 44
CHANGE OR BARRISTER AND SOLICITOR OR PLEADER
NOTICE OF CHANGE (O.44, r.1)
1. (1) A party to any suit who sues or defends by a barrister and solicitor or pleader may
change his barrister and solicitor or pleader without an order for that purpose but, unless and
until notice of the change is filed and copies of the notice are lodged and served in
accordance with this rule, the former barrister and solicitor or pleader shall, subject to Rules 5
and 6, be considered the barrister and solicitor or pleader of the party until the final
conclusion of the suit in the Court in which it is proceeding and of any appeal from the
judgment or any order of that Court therein.
(2) Notice of a change of barrister and solicitor or pleader must be filed, and a copy thereof
lodged in the registry of the Court in which the suit is proceeding.
(3) The party giving the notice must serve on every other party to the suit, not being a party
in default as to entry of appearance, and on the former barrister and solicitor pleader, a copy
of the notice indorsed with a memorandum stating that the notice has been duly filed in the
registry.
(4) The party giving the notice may perform the duties prescribed by this rule in person or by
his new barrister and solicitor or pleader.
NOTICE OF CHANGE OF AGENT (O.44, r.2)
2. (1) Where a barrister and solicitor for whom some other barrister and solicitor or pleader is
acting as agent in a suit changes the barrister and solicitor or pleader so acting, notice of the
change must be given, and paragraph (2) of Rule 1 shall apply in relation to a notice of
change of agent as it applies in relation to a notice of change of barrister and solicitor or
pleader.
(2) The barrister and solicitor giving the notice must serve on every party to the cause or
matter, not being the party for whom he is acting or a party in default as to entry of
appearance, and on the barrister and solicitor or pleader formerly acting as agent, a copy of
the notice indorsed with a memorandum stating that the notice has been duly filed in the
registry.
NOTICE OF APPOINTMENT (O.44, r.3)
3. Where a party, after having sued or defended in person, appoints a barrister and solicitor or
pleader to act in the cause or matter on his behalf, the change may be made without an order
for that purpose and paragraphs (2), (3) and (4) of Rule 1 shall, with the necessary
modifications, apply in relation to a notice of appointment of a barrister and solicitor or
pleader as they apply in relation to a notice of change of barrister and solicitor or pleader.
NOTICE OF INTENTION TO ACT IN PERSON (O.44, r.4)
4. Where a party, after having sued or defended by a barrister and solicitor or pleader, intends
and is entitled to act in person, the change may be made without an order for that purpose and
Rule 1 shall, with the necessary modifications, apply in relation to a notice of intention to act
in person as it applies in relation to a notice of change of barrister and solicitor or pleader
except that the notice of intention to act in person must contain an address for service of the
party giving it.
REMOVAL FROM RECORD AT INSTANCE OF ANOTHER PARTY (O.44, r.5)
5. (1) Where -
(a) a barrister and solicitor or pleader who has acted for a party in a suit has died or
become bankrupt or cannot be found or has failed to take out a practising certificate or
has been struck off the roll of barristers and solicitors or of pleaders or has been
suspended from practising or has for any other reason ceased to practice; and
(b) the party has not given notice of change of barrister and solicitor or pleader or
notice of intention to act in person in accordance with the preceding provisions of this
Order,
any other party to the suit may apply to the Court in which the suit is proceeding or, if an
appeal from the judgment or an order therein is pending, to the Supreme Court for an order
declaring that the barrister and solicitor or pleader has ceased to be the barrister and solicitor
or pleader acting for the first-mentioned party in the cause or matter, and the Court may make
an order accordingly.
(2) An application for an order under this rule must be made by summons and the summons
must, unless the Court otherwise directs, be served on the party to whose barrister and
solicitor or pleader the application relates.
The application must be supported by an affidavit stating the grounds of the application.
(3) Where an order is made under this rule the party on whose application it was must -
(a) serve on every other party to the suit, not being a party in default as to entry of
appearance, a copy of the order; and
(b) leave at the registry a copy of the order and a certificate signed by him or his
barrister and solicitor or pleader that the order has been duly served as aforesaid.
(4) An order made under this rule shall not affect the rights of the barrister and solicitor or
pleader and the party for whom he acted as between themselves.
WITHDRAWAL ON CEASING TO ACT FOR PARTY (O.44, r.6)
6. (1) Where a barrister and solicitor or pleader who has acted for a party in a suit has ceased
so to act and the party has not given notice of change in accordance with Rule 1, or notice of
intention to act in person in accordance with Rule 4, the barrister and solicitor or pleader may
apply to the Court for an order declaring that he has ceased to be the barrister and solicitor or
pleader acting for the party in the cause or matter, and the Court may make an order
accordingly, but unless and until the barrister and solicitor or pleader -
(a) serves on every party to the suit, not being a party in default as to entry of
appearance, a copy of the order; and
(b) leaves at the registry a copy of the order and a certificate signed by him that the
order has been duly served as aforesaid,
he shall, subject to the preceding provisions of this Order, be considered the barrister and
solicitor or pleader of the party till the final conclusion of the suit and any appeal from the
judgment or an order therein.
(2) An application for an order under this rule must be made by summons and the summons
must, unless the Court otherwise directs, be served on the party for whom the barrister and
solicitor or pleader acted.
The application must be supported by an affidavit stating the grounds of the application.
(3) An order made under this rule shall not affect the rights of the barrister and solicitor or
pleader and the party for whom he acted as between themselves.
ADDRESS FOR SERVICE AFTER REMOVAL OR WITHDRAWAL (O.44, r.7)
7. Where -
(a) an order is made under Rule 5; or
(b) an order is made under Rule 6, and the applicant for that order has complied with
paragraph (1) of Rule 6,
then, unless and until the party to whose barrister and solicitor or pleader the order relates
either appoints another barrister and solicitor or pleader and complies with Rule 3 or, being
entitled to act in person, gives notice of his intention so to do and complies with Rule 4, his
last known address or, where the party is a body corporate, its registered or principal office
shall, for the purpose of the service on him of any document not required to be served
personally, be deemed to be his address for service.
ORDER TO APPLY TO MATRIMONIAL SUITS (O.44, r.8)
8. This Order shall have effect in relation to matrimonial suits.
________
ORDER 45
SERVICE OF FOREIGN PROCESS
INTERPRETATION (O.45, r.1)
1. In the order "process" includes a citation.
SERVICE OF FOREIGN LEGAL PROCESS (O.45, r.2)
2. (1) This rule applies in relation to the service of any process required in connection with
civil or commercial proceedings pending before a court or other tribunal of a foreign country
where a letter of request from such a tribunal requesting service on a person in Nauru of any
such process sent with the letter is received by the Chief Secretary and is sent by him to the
Supreme Court with an intimation that it is desirable that effect should be given to the
request.
(2) In order that service of the process may be effected in accordance with this rule the letter
of request must be accompanied by a translation thereof in English, by 2 copies of the process
to be served and by 2 copies of a translation of the process in English.
(3) Subject to the next following paragraph and to any written law which provides for the
manner in which documents may be served on bodies corporate, service of the process shall
be effected by leaving a copy of it and of the translation with the person to be served.
Service shall be effected by the process server appointed under Rule 5.
(4) Where an application in that behalf is made by the Secretary for Justice, the Court may
make an order far substituted service of the process, and, where such an order is made,
service of the process shall be effected by taking such steps as the Court may direct to bring
the process to the notice of the person to be served.
(5) After service of the process has been effected or, if such be the case, attempts to effect
service of it have failed, the process server, shall leave with the Registrar a copy of the
process, an affidavit made by the person who served, or attempted to serve, the process
stating when, where and how he did or attempted to do so, a copy of that affidavit and a
statement of the costs incurred in effecting, or attempting to effect, service.
(6) The Registrar shall give a certificate -
(a) identifying the documents annexed thereto, that is to say, the letter of request for
service, a copy of the process received with the letter and a copy of the affidavit
referred to in the last preceding paragraph;
(b) certifying that the method of service of the process and the proof of service are
such as are required by the rules of the Supreme Court regulating the service of
process of that Court in Nauru or, it such be the case, that service of the process could
not be effected for the reason specified in the certificate; and
(c) certifying that the cost of effecting, or attempting to effect services is the amount
so specified.
(7) The certificate given under the last preceding paragraph shall be sealed with the seal of
the Supreme Court and shall be sent to the Chief Secretary.
SERVICE OF FOREIGN LEGAL PROCESS UNDER CIVIL PROCEDURE
CONVENTION (O.45, r.3)
3. (1) This rule applies in relation to the service of any process required in connection with
civil or commercial proceedings pending before a court or other tribunal of a foreign country,
being a country with which there subsists a convention providing for service in Nauru of
process of the tribunals of that country, where a letter of request from a consular or other
authority of that country requesting service on a person in Nauru of any such process sent
with the letter is received by the Registrar.
(2) In order that service of the process may be effected in accordance with this rule the letter
of request must be accompanied by a copy of a translation in English of the process to be
served.
(3) Subject to any written law which provides for the manner in which documents may be
served on bodies corporate and to any special provisions of the relevant Convention, service
of the process shall be effected by leaving the original process or a copy of it, as indicated in
the letter of request, and a copy of the translation with the person to be served.
Service shall be effected by the process server appointed under Rule 5.
(4) After service of the process has been effected or, if such be the case, attempts to effect
service of it have failed, the process server shall leave with the Registrar an affidavit stating
when, where and how he did or attempted to serve the process, and a statement of the costs
incurred in effecting, or attempting to effect, service.
(5) The Registry shall give a certificate certifying -
(a) that the process or a copy thereof, as the case may be, was served on the person, at
the time, and in the manner, specified in the certificate or, if such be the case, that
service of the process could not be effected for the reason so specified; and
(b) that the cost of effecting, or attempting to effect, service, is the amount so
specified.
(6) The certificate given under the last preceding paragraph shall be sealed with the seal of
the Supreme Court and shall be sent to the consular or other authority by whom the request
for service was made.
COSTS OF SERVICE, ETC., TO BE SCRUTINISED BY REGISTRAR (O.45, r.4)
4. Before giving a certificate under paragraph (6) of Rule 2 or paragraph (5) of Rule 3
certifying that the cost of effecting, or attempting to effect, service is the amount specified,
the Registrar shall scrutinise the amount of such costs and satisfy himself that the amount
specified is correct.
PROCESS SERVER TO BE APPOINTED BY THE REGISTRAR (O.45, r.5)
The Registrar shall appoint a process server, as required, for the purposes of this order.
_______
ORDER 46
OBTAINING EVIDENCE FOR FOREIGN COURTS, ETC.
JURISDICTION OF REGISTRAR TO MAKE ORDER (O.46, r.1)
1. (1) Subject to the next following paragraph, the power of the Supreme Court or a judge
under either of the Foreign Tribunals Evidence Act, 1856, and the Evidence by Commission
Act, 1859, of England in their application to Nauru to make, in relation to a matter pending
before a court or tribunal in a place outside the jurisdiction, orders for the examination of
witnesses and for attendance and for production of documents and to give directions may be
exercised by the Registrar.
(2) The Registrar may not make such an order if the matter in question is a criminal matter.
APPLICATION FOR ORDER (O.46, r.2)
2. (1) Subject to paragraph (3) and Rule 3, an application for an order under either of the
Foreign Tribunals Evidence Act, 1856, and the Evidence by Commission Act, 1859, of
England in their application to Nauru must be made ex parte to the Supreme Court by a
person duly authorised to make the application on behalf of the court or tribunal in question
and must be supported by affidavit.
(2) There must be exhibited to the affidavit in support the letter of request, certificate or other
document evidencing the desire of the court or tribunal to obtain for the purpose of a matter
pending before it the evidence of the witness to whom the application relates or the
production of any documents and, if that document is not in the English language, a
translation thereof in that language.
(3) After an application for such an order as is mentioned in paragraph (1) has been made in
relation to a matter pending before a court or tribunal, an application for a further order or
directions in relation to the same matter must be made by summons.
APPLICATION BY SECRETARY FOR JUSTICE IN CERTAIN CASES (O.46, r.3)
3. Where a letter of request, certificate or other document requesting that the evidence of a
witness within the jurisdiction in relation to a matter pending before a court or tribunal in a
foreign country be obtained -
(a) is received by the Chief Secretary and sent by him to the Registrar with an
intimation that effect should be given to the request without requiring an application
for that purpose to be made by the agent in Nauru of any party to the matter pending
before the court or tribunal; or
(b) is received by the Registrar in pursuance of a Convention providing for the taking
of the evidence of any person in Nauru for the assistance of a court or tribunal in the
foreign country, and no person is named in the document as the person who will make
the necessary application on behalf of such party,
the Registrar shall send the document to the Secretary for Justice who may, with the consent
of the Chief Secretary, make an application for an order under the Foreign Tribunals
Evidence Act, 1856, of England in its application to Nauru and take such other steps as may
be necessary, to give effect to the request.
PERSON TO TAKE AND MANNER OF TAKING EXAMINATION (O.46, r.4)
4. (1) Any order made in pursuance of this Order for the examination of a witness may direct
the examination to be taken before any fit and proper person nominated or the person
applying for the order or before such other person as to the Court seems fit.
(2) Subject to any special directions contained in any order made in pursuance of this Order
for the examination of any witness, the examination shall be taken in the manner provided by
Rules 5 to 10 and paragraphs (1) to (3) of Rule 11 of Order 33 and an order may be made
under Rule 14 of that Order for payment of the fees and expense due to the examiner, and
those rules shall apply accordingly with any necessary modifications.
DEALING WITH DEPOSITION (O.46, r.5)
5. Unless any order made in pursuance of this Order for the examination on any witness
otherwise directs, the examiner before whom the examination was taken must send the
deposition of that witness to the Registrar, and Registrar shall -
(a) give a certificate sealed with the seal of the Supreme Court identifying the
documents annexed thereto, that is to say, the letter of request, certificate, or other
document from the court or tribunal out of the jurisdiction requesting the examination,
the order of the Court for examination and the deposition taken in pursuance of the
order; and
(b) send the certificate with the document annexed thereto to the Chief Secretary or,
where the letter of request, certificate or other document was sent to the Registrar by
some other person in accordance with a Convention, to that other person for
transmission to that court or tribunal.
_______
ORDER 47
ARBITRATION PROCEEDINGS
COMMENCEMENT OF ARBITRATION PROCEEDINGS (O.47. r.1)
1. (1) Every suit in which application is made to the Supreme Court for exercise by the Court
or a judge of powers conferred on the Court or a judge by the Arbitration Act 1950 of
England in its application to Nauru or for a declaration that an award made by an arbitrator or
umpire is not binding on a party to the award on the ground that it was made without
jurisdiction shall be made by writ of summons.
(2) Any person served with a writ of summon in such a suit must enter an appearance if he
wishes to be heard in the matter but no pleadings shall be required or allowed.
MATTERS FOR A JUDGE IN COURT (O.47, r.2)
2. (1) In a suit where an order is sought -
(a) remitting an award under section 22 of the Arbitration Act 1950 of England in its
application to Nauru;
(b) removing an arbitrator or umpire under subsection (1) of section 23 of that Act; or
(c) setting aside an award under .subsection (2) of section 23 thereof;
or where a declaration is sought that an award made by an arbitrator or umpire is not binding
on a party to the award on the ground that it was made without jurisdiction, application for
the order or declaration shall be made, after the time allowed for all persons served with the
writ of summons to enter an appearance has elapsed, by motion to a single judge in court.
(2) A special case stated for the decision of the Supreme Court by an arbitrator or umpire
under section 21 of the Arbitration Act 1950 of England in its application to Nauru shall be
heard and determined by a single judge in court.
MATTERS FOR A JUDGE IN CHAMBERS (O.47, r.3)
3. (1) Subject to the preceding provisions of this Order, application for an order which the
Supreme Court or a judge has jurisdiction under the Arbitration Act 1950 of England in its
application to Nauru to make shall be made, after the time allowed for all persons served with
the writ of summons to enter an appearance has elapsed, by summons.
(2) Where no judge is present in Nauru, the jurisdiction referred to in the last preceding
paragraph may be exercised by the Registrar.
(3) An application for an order under section 21 of the said Act directing an arbitrator or
umpire to state a case must be made by originating summons and the summons must be
served on the arbitrator or umpire and the other party to the reference.
SPECIAL PROVISIONS AS TO APPLICATIONS TO REMIT OR SET ASIDE
AWARD (O.47, r.4)
4. (1) A suit for an order of the Supreme Court -
(a) remitting an award under section 22 of the Arbitration Act 1950 of England in its
application to Nauru; or
(b) setting aside an award under subsection (2) of section 23 of that Act or otherwise;
may be made at any time within 6 weeks after the award has been made and published to the
parties but not thereafter.
(2) In every such suit, the notice of motion must state in general terms the grounds of the
application; and, where the motion is founded on evidence by affidavit, a copy of every
affidavit intended to be used must be served with that notice.
SERVICE OF WRIT OUT OF NAURU (O.47, r.5)
5. Service of a writ of summons in a suit commenced under this Order out of Nauru is
permissible with the leave of the Court.
______
ORDER 48
ADMIRALTY PROCEEDINGS
APPLICATION AND INTERPRETATION (O.48, r.1)
1. (1) This order applies to Admiralty causes and matters, and the other provisions of these
Rules apply to those causes and matters subject to the provisions of this Order.
(2) In this Order -
"action in rem" means an Admiralty action in rem;
"caveat against arrest" means a caveat entered in the caveat book under Rule 6;
"caveat against release and payment" means a caveat entered in the caveat book under
Rule 14;
"caveat book'' means the book kept in the registry in which caveats issued under this
Order are entered;
''limitation suit" means a suit by shipowners or other persons under the Merchant
Shipping Acts 1894 to 1967 of England in their application to Nauru for the limitation
of the amount of their liability in connection with a ship or other property;
"registry", except where the context otherwise requires, means the registry of the
Supreme Court;
"ship" includes any description of vessel used in navigation.
ADMIRALTY ACTIONS (O.46, r.2)
2. (1) The expression "Admiralty action'' includes-
(a) every suit to enforce a claim for damage, loss of life or personal injury arising out
of -
(i) a collision between ships; or
(ii) the carrying out of or omission to carry out a manoeuvre in the case
of one or more of two or more ships; or
(iii) non-compliance, on the part of one or more of two or more ships,
with the collision regulations; and
(b) every limitation suit.
(2) Where any person who would be liable in an action in personam on any such claim as is
mentioned in the next following paragraph, being a claim arising in connection with a ship,
was, when the cause of action arose, the owner or charterer of, or in possession or in control
of the ship, the Admiralty jurisdiction of the Supreme Court may, whether the claim gives
rise to a maritime lien on the ship or not, be invoked by an action in rem against -
(a) that ship, if at the time when the suit is brought it is beneficially owned respect of
all the shares therein by that person; or
(b) any other ship which, at the time when the suit is brought, is beneficially owned as
aforesaid.
(3) The claims referred to in the last preceding paragraph are -
(a) any claim for damage done by a ship;
(b) any claim for damage received by a ship;
(c) any claim for loss of life or personal injury sustained in consequence of any defect
in a ship or in her apparel or equipment, or of the wrongful act, neglect or default of
the owners, charterers or persons in possession or control of a ship or of the master or
crew thereof or of any other person for whose wrongful acts, neglects or defaults the
owners, charterers or persons in possession or control of a ship are responsible, being
an act, neglect or default in the navigation or management of the ship, in the loading,
carriage or discharge of goods on, in or from the ship or in the embarkation, carriage
or disembarkation of persons on, in or from the ship;
(d) any claim for loss of or damage to goods carried in a ship;
(e) any claim arising out of any agreement relating to the carriage of goods in a ship
or to the use or hire of a ship;
(f) any claim in the nature of salvage, including any claim arising by virtue of the
application, by or under section 29 of the Air Navigation Act 1971, of the law relating
to salvage to aircraft and their apparel and cargo;
(g) any claim in the nature of towage in respect of a ship or an aircraft;
(h) any claim in the nature of pilotage in respect of a ship or an aircraft;
(i) any claim in respect of goods or materials supplied to a ship for her operation or
maintenance;
(j) any claim in respect of the construction, repair or equipment of a ship or dock
chargers or dues;
(k) any claim by a master or member of the crew of a ship for wages and any claim by
or in respect of a master or member of the crew of a ship for any money or property
which, under any of the provisions of the Merchant Shipping Acts, 1894 to 1967, of
England in their application to Nauru is recoverable as wages;
(l) any claim by a master, shipper, charterer or agent in respect of disbursements made
on account of a ship;
(m) any claim arising out of an act which is or is claimed to be a general average act;
(n) any claim arising out of bottomry.
(4) In this rule ''collision regulations" means regulations under section 418 of the Merchant
Shipping Act, 1894, of England in its application to Nauru, or any such rules as are
mentioned in subsection (1) of section 421 of that Act or any rules made under subsection (2)
of the said section 421.
ISSUE OF WRIT AND ENTRY OF APPEARANCE (O.48, r.3)
3. (1) An action in rem must be begun by a writ of summons; and the writ must be in Form
No. 39 of Appendix A.
(2) Rule 7 of Order 5 and Order 10 shall apply in relation to a writ by which an Admiralty
action is begun.
SERVICE OF WRIT OUT OF NAURU (O.48, r.4)
4. (1) Subject to the following provisions of this rule, service out of the jurisdiction of a writ,
or notice of a writ, containing any such claim as is mentioned in sub-paragraph (a) of Rule 2
(1) is permissible with the leave of the Court if, but only if -
(a) the defendant has his habitual residence or a place of business within Nauru;
(b) the cause of action arose within the territorial waters of Nauru or within the limits
of a port of Nauru;
(c) a suit arising out of the same incident or series of incidents is proceeding in the
Court or has been heard and determined in the Court; or
(d) the defendant has submitted or agreed to submit to the jurisdiction of the Court.
(2) The last preceding paragraph shall not apply to an action in rem.
(3) Paragraph (2) of Rule 1 of Order 9 shall not apply to a writ by which any Admiralty
action is begun or to notice of any such writ.
WARRANT OF ARREST (O.48, r.5)
5. (1) After a writ has been issued in an action in rem a warrant in Form No. 40 of Appendix
A for the arrest of the property against which the suit or any counterclaim in the suit is
brought may, subject to the provisions of this rule, be issued at the instance of the plaintiff or
of the defendant, as the case may be.
(2) A party applying for the issue out of the registry of a warrant to arrest any property shall
procure a search to be made in the caveat book for the purpose of ascertaining whether there
is a caveat against arrest in force with respect to that property.
(3) A warrant of arrest shall not be issued until the party applying for it has filed a written
request in Form No. 41 of Appendix A requesting issue of the warrant together with an
affidavit made by him or his agent containing the particulars required by paragraphs (6), (7)
and (8) so, however, that the Court may, if it thinks fit, allow the warrant to issue
notwithstanding that the affidavit does not contain all those particulars.
(4) Except with the leave of the Court, a warrant of arrest shall not be issued in an action in
rem against a foreign ship belonging to a port of a State having a High Commissioner, a
consulate or a diplomatic or consular representative in Nauru, being a suit for possession of
the ship or for wages, until notice that the action has been begun has been sent to the High
Commissioner, consul or representative.
(5) Except with the leave of the Court, a warrant of arrest shall not be issued in an action in
rem in which there is a claim arising out of bottomry until the bottomry bond and, if the bond
is in a foreign language, a notarial translation thereof is produced to the Registrar.
(6) Every affidavit must state -
(a) the name, address and occupation of the applicant for the warrant;
(b) the nature of the claim or counterclaim in respect of which the warrant is required
and that it has not been satisfied; and
(c) the nature of the property to be arrested and, if the property is a ship, the name of
the ship and the port to which she belongs.
(7) Every affidavit in an action in rem brought against a ship by virtue of paragraph (2) of
Rule 2 must state -
(a) whether the ship against which the suit is brought is the ship in connection with
which the claim in the suit arose;
(b) that in the belief of the deponent the person who would be liable on the claim in
an action in personam was, when the cause of action arose, the owner or charterer, or
in possession or control, of the ship in connection with which the claim arose and was
also, at the time of the issue of the writ, the beneficial owner of all the shares in the
ship against which the suit is brought; and
(c) the grounds of the depondent's belief.
(8) Every affidavit in an action in rein for possession of a ship or for wages must state the
nationality of the ship against which the suit is brought and that the notice, if any, required by
paragraph (4) has been sent.
A copy of any such notice must be annexed to the affidavit.
(9) An affidavit in such a suit as is referred to in paragraph (5) must have annexed thereto a
certified copy of the bottomry bond, or of the translation thereof.
CAVEAT AGAINST ARREST (O.48, r.6)
6. (1) A person who desires to prevent the arrest of any property must file in the registry a
written request, in Form No. 42 of Appendix A, signed by him or his barrister and solicitor or
pleader undertaking -
(a) to enter an appearance in any suit that may be begun against the property
described in the request; and
(b) within 3 days after receiving notice that such a suit has been begun, to give bail in
the suit in a sum not exceeding an amount specified in the request or to pay the
amount so specified into court;
and on the filing of the request a caveat against the issue of a warrant to arrest the property
described in the request shall be entered in the caveat book.
(2) The fact that there is a caveat against arrest in force shall not prevent the issue of a
warrant to arrest the property to which the caveat relates.
REMEDY WHERE PROPERTY PROTECTED BY CAVEAT IS ARRESTED (O.48,
r.7)
7. Where any property with respect to which a caveat against arrest is in force is arrested in
pursuance of a warrant of arrest, the party at whose instance the caveat was entered may
apply to the Court by motion for an order under this rule and, on the hearing of the
application, the Court, unless it is satisfied that the party procuring the arrest of the property
had a good and sufficient reason for so doing, may by order discharge the warrant and may
also order the last-mentioned party to pay to the applicant damages in respect of the loss
suffered by the applicant as a result of the arrest.
SERVICE OF WRIT OF SUMMONS IN ACTION IN REM (O.48, r.8)
8. (1) Subject to the next following paragraph, a writ by which an action in rem is begun must
be served on the property against which the suit is brought except -
(a) where the property is freight, in which case it must be served on the cargo in
respect of which the freight is payable or on the ship in which that cargo was carried;
or
(b) where that property has been sold and the proceeds of sale paid into court, in
which case it must be served on the Registrar.
(2) A writ need not be served on the property mentioned in the last preceding paragraph or
the Registrar if the writ is deemed to have been duly served on the defendant by virtue of
paragraph (2) or paragraph (3) of Rule 1 of Order 8.
(3) Where by virtue of this rule a writ is required to be served on any property, then, if the
plaintiff wishes service of the writ to be effected by the Director of Police, he must leave the
writ and a copy thereof at the registry and file therein a written request in Form No. 43 of
Appendix A; and where he does so the Director shall serve the writ, or cause it to be served
by another police officer, on the property described in the request.
The prescribed fee payable to, and the expenses incurred by, the Director of Police or the
other police officer in effecting service shall be paid to the Director on demand by him.
(4) Where the plaintiff in an action in rem, or his barrister and solicitor or pleader, becomes
aware that there is in force a caveat against arrest with respect to the property against which
the suit is brought, he must serve the writ forthwith on the person at whose instance the
caveat was entered.
(5) Where a writ by which an action in rem is begun is amended under Order 17, unless the
Court otherwise directs on an application made ex parte, the amended writ must be served on
any defendant who has entered an appearance in the suit or, if no defendant has entered an
appearance therein, on the property mentioned in paragraph (1) or the Registrar.
COMMITTAL OF BARRISTER AND SOLICITOR OR PLEADER FAILING TO
COMPLY WITH UNDERTAKING (O.48, r.9)
9. Where the barrister and solicitor or pleader of a party to an action in rem fails to comply
with a written undertaking given by him to any other party or his barrister and solicitor or
pleader to enter an appearance in the suit, give bail or pay money into court in lieu of bail, he
shall be liable to committal.
EXECUTION, ETC., OF WARRANT OF ARREST (O.48, r.10)
10. (1) A warrant of arrest is valid for 12 months beginning with the date of its issue.
(2) A warrant of arrest may be executed only by the Director of Police or by another police
officer under his directions.
(3) A warrant of arrest shall not be executed until an undertaking in writing, satisfactory to
the Director of Police to pay the fees and expenses of the Director has been lodged in the
Director's office.
(4) A warrant of arrest shall not be executed if the party at whose instance it was issued
lodges a written request to that effect with the Director of Police.
(5) A warrant of arrest issued against freight may be executed by serving the warrant on the
cargo in respect of which the freight is payable or on the ship in which that cargo was carried
or on both of them.
(6) Subject to the last preceding paragraph, a warrant of arrest must be served on the property
against which it is issued.
(7) Within 7 days after the execution of a warrant of arrest, the warrant must be filed in the
registry by the Director of Police.
SERVICE, ETC., ON SHIPS, ETC.: HOW EFFECTED (O.48, r.11)
11. (1) Subject to the next following paragraph, execution of a warrant of arrest or service of
a writ in an action in rem against a ship, freight or cargo shall be effected by -
(a) affixing the warrant or writ for a short time on any mast of the ship or on the
outside of any suitable part of the ship's superstructure; and
(b) on removing the warrant or writ, leaving a copy of it affixed, in the case of the
warrant, in its place or, in the case of the writ, on a sheltered, conspicuous part of the
ship.
(2) Execution of a warrant of arrest or service of a writ in an action in rem against freight or
cargo or both shall, if the cargo has been landed or transshipped, be effected -
(a) by placing the warrant or writ for a short time on the cargo and, on removing the
warrant or writ, leaving a copy of it on the cargo; or
(b) if the cargo is in the custody of a person who will not permit access to it, by
leaving a copy of the warrant or writ with that person.
APPLICATIONS WITH RESPECT TO PROPERTY UNDER ARREST (O.48, r.12)
12. (1) The. Director of Police may at any time apply to a judge or, when no judge is present
in Nauru, the Registrar for directions with respect to property under arrest in at Admiralty
action and may, or, if the Court so directs, shall, give notice of the application to any or all of
the parties to every suit against the property.
(2) The Director of Police shall send a copy of any order made under the last preceding
paragraph to all the parties to every suit against the property to which the order relates.
RELEASE OF PROPERTY UNDER ARREST (O.48, r.13)
13. (1) Except where property arrested in pursuance of a warrant of arrest is sold under an
order of the Court, property which has been so arrested shall only be released under the
authority of an instrument of release, in this rule referred to as a ''release'', in Form No. 44 of
Appendix A, issued out of the registry.
(2) A party at whose instance any property was arrested may, before an appearance is entered
in the suit, file a notice withdrawing the warrant of arrest and, if he does so, a release shall,
subject to the next following paragraph and paragraph (5), be issued with respect to that
property.
(3) Unless a judge or, when no judge is present in Nauru, the Registrar otherwise orders, a
release shall not be issued with respect to property as to which a caveat against release is in
force.
(4) A release may be issued at the instance of a party interested in the property under arrest if
a judge or, when no judge is present in Nauru, the Registrar so orders, or, subject to the last
preceding paragraph, if all the other parties to the suit in which the warrant of arrest was
issued consent.
(5) Before a release is issued the party entitled to its issue must -
(a) if there is a caveat against release in force as to the property in question, give
notice to the party at whose instance it was entered or his barrister and solicitor or
pleader requiring the caveat to be withdrawn; and
(b) file a written request in Form No. 45 of Appendix A requesting issue of a release.
(6) Before property under arrest is released in compliance with a release issued under this
rule, the party at whose instance it was issued must, in accordance with the directions of the
Director of Police, either pay the costs, charges and expenses due in connection with the care
and custody of the property while under arrest or give a written undertaking to do so.
(7) A judge or, when no judge is present in Nauru, the Registrar, on the application of any
party who objects to directions given to him by the Director of Police under the last
preceding paragraph, may vary or revoke the directions.
CAVEAT AGAINST RELEASE AND PAYMENT (O.48, r.14)
14. (1) A person who desires to prevent the release of any property under arrest in an action
in rem and the payment out of court of any money in court representing the proceeds of sale
of that property must file in the registry a written request in Form No. 46 of Appendix A, and
on the filing of the request a caveat against the issue of a release with respect to that property
and the payment out of court of that money shall be entered in the caveat book.
(2) Where the release of any property under arrest is delayed by the entry of a caveat under
this rule, any person having an interest in that property may apply to the Court by motion for
an order requiring the person who procured the entry of the caveat to pay to the applicant
damages in respect of the loss suffered by the applicant by reason of the delay, and the Court,
unless it is satisfied that the person procuring the entry of the caveat had a good and sufficient
reason for so doing, may make an order accordingly.
DURATION OF CAVEATS (O.48, r.15)
15. (1) Every caveat entered in the caveat book is valid for 6 months beginning with the date
of its entry but the person at whose instance a caveat was entered may withdraw it by filing a
written request in Form No. 47 of Appendix A.
(2) The period of validity of a caveat may not be extended but this provision shall not be
taken as preventing the entry of successive caveats.
BAIL (O.48, r.16)
16. (1) Bail on behalf of a party to an action in rem must be given by bond in Form No. 48 of
Appendix A; and the sureties to the bond must enter into the pond before a Commissioner of
Oaths, not being a Commissioner who, or whose partner, is acting as barrister and solicitor or
pleader or agent for the party on whose behalf the bail is to be given, or before the Registrar.
(2) Subject to the next following paragraph, a surety to a bail bond must make an affidavit
stating that he is able to pay the sum for which the bond is given.
(3) Where a corporation is a surety to a bail bond given on behalf of a party, no affidavit shall
be made under the last preceding paragraph on behalf of the corporation unless the opposite
party requires it, but where such an affidavit is required it must be made by a director,
manager, secretary or other similar officer of the corporation.
(4) The party on whose behalf bail is given must serve on the opposite party a notice of bail
containing the names and addresses of the persons who have given bail on his behalf and of
the Commissioner or Registrar before whom the bail bond was entered into: and after the
expiration of 24 hours from the service of the notice, or sooner with the consent of the
opposite party, he may file the bond and must at the same time file the affidavits, if any,
made under paragraph (2) and an affidavit proving due service of the notice of bail to which a
copy of that notice must be exhibited.
INTERVENERS (O.48, r.17)
17. (1) Where property against which an action in rem is brought is under arrest or money
representing the proceeds of sale of that property is in court, a person who has an interest in
that property or money but who is not a defendant to the action may, with the leave of a judge
or, when no judge is present in Nauru, the Registrar, intervene in the suit.
(2) An application for the grant of leave under this rule must be made ex parte by summons
supported by an affidavit showing the interest of the applicant in the property against which
the suit is brought or in the money in court.
(3) A person to whom leave is granted to intervene in a suit must enter an appearance therein
in the registry within the period specified in the order granting leave; and Rules 1 to 3 of
Order 10 shall, with the necessary modifications, apply in relation to the entry of appearance
by an intervener as if he were a defendant named in the writ.
(4) The Court may order that a person to whom it grants leave to intervene in a suit shall;
within such period as may be specified in the order, serve on every other party to the suit
such pleading as may be so specified.
PRELIMINARY ACTS (O.48, r.18)
18. (1) In a suit to enforce a claim for damage, loss of life or personal injury arising out of a
collision between ships, unless a judge or, when no judge is present in Nauru, the Registrar
otherwise orders, the plaintiff must, within 2 months after issue of the writ, and the defendant
must, within 2 months after entering an appearance in the suit, and before any pleading is
served, lodge in the registry a document, in these rules referred to as a preliminary act,
containing a statement of the following particulars -
(i) the names of the ships which came into collision and their ports of registry;
(ii) the date and time of the collision;
(iii) the place of the collision;
(iv) the direction and force of the wind;
(v) the state of the weather;
(vi) the state, direction and force of the tidal or other current;
(vii) the course steered and speed through the water of the ship when the other ship
was first seen or immediately before any measures were taken with reference to her
presence, whichever was the earlier;
(viii) the lights, if any, carried by the ship;
(ix)(a) the distance and bearing of the other ship if and when her echo was first
observed by radar;
(b) the distance, bearing and approximate heading of the other ship when first seen;
(x) what light or combination of lights, if any, of the other ship was first seen;
(xi) what other lights or combinations of lights, if any, of the other ship were
subsequently seen before the collision, and when;
(xii) what alterations, if any, were made to the course and speed of the ship after the
earlier of the two times referred to in particular (vii) up to the time of the collision,
and when, and what measures, if any, other than alterations of course or speed, were
taken to avoid the collision, and when;
(xiii) the parts of each ship which first came into contact and the approximate angle
between the two ships at the moment of contact;
(xiv) what sound signals, if any, were given, and when;
(xv) what sound signals, if any, were heard from the other ship, and when.
(2) Every preliminary act shall be sealed by the Registrar and shall be filed in a closed
envelope, stamped with an official stamp showing the date of filing, and unless the Court
otherwise orders, no envelope shall be opened until the pleadings closed and a consent signed
by each of the parties or his barrister and solicitor or pleader to the opening of the preliminary
acts filed with the Registrar.
(3) Where the Court orders the preliminary acts to be opened, the Court further order the suit
to be tried without pleadings but, where the Court orders the suit to be so tried, any party who
intends to rely on the defence of compulsory pilotage must give notice of his intention to do
so to the other parties within 7 days after the opening of the preliminary acts.
(4) Where the Court orders the suit to be tried without pleadings, it may also order each party,
within such period as may be specified in the order, to file a statement of the grounds on
which he charges any other party with negligence in connection with the collision and to
serve a copy thereof on that other party.
(5) Rule 1 of Order 15 shall not apply to a suit in which preliminary acts are required but,
unless the Court orders the action to be tried without pleadings, the plaintiff must serve a
statement of claim on each defendant within 14 days after the latest date on which the
preliminary act of any party to the suit is filed.
FAILURE TO LODGE PRELIMINARY ACT: PROCEEDINGS AGAINST PARTY
IN DEFAULT (O.48, r.19)
19. (1) Where in such a suit as is referred to in paragraph (1) of Rule 18 the plaintiff fails to
lodge a preliminary act within the prescribed period, any defendant who has lodged such an
act may apply to the Court by summons for an order to dismiss the suit, and the Court may by
order dismiss the suit or make such other order on such terms as it thinks just.
(2) Where in such a suit, being an action in personam, a defendant fails to lodge a preliminary
act within the prescribed period, Rules 2 and 3 of Order 16 shall apply as if the defendant's
failure to lodge the preliminary act within that period were a failure by him to serve a defence
on the plaintiff within the period fixed by or under these rules for service thereof, and the
plaintiff, if he has lodged a preliminary act may, subject to any rule relating to the entry of
judgment against the Republic, accordingly enter judgment against that defendant in
accordance with the said Rule 2 or the said Rule 3, as the circumstances of the case require.
(3) Where in such a suit, being an action in rem, a defendant fails to lodge a preliminary act
within the prescribed period, the plaintiff, if he has lodged such an act may apply to the Court
by motion for judgment against that defendant, and it shall not be necessary for the plaintiff
to file or serve a statement of claim or an affidavit before the hearing of the motion.
(4) On the hearing of a motion under the last preceding paragraph the Court may make such
order as it thinks just, and where the defendant does not appear on the hearing and the Court
is of opinion that judgment should be given for the plaintiff provided he proves his case, it
shall order the plaintiff's preliminary act to be opened and require the plaintiff to satisfy the
Court that his claim is well founded.
The plaintiff's evidence may, unless the Court otherwise orders, be given by affidavit without
any order or direction in that behalf.
(5) Where the plaintiff in accordance with a requirement under the last preceding paragraph
satisfies the Court that his claim is well founded, the Court may give judgment for the claim
with or without a reference to the Registrar and may at the same time order the property
against which the suit is brought to be appraised and sold and the proceeds to be paid into
court or make such order as it thinks just.
(6) The Court may, on such terms as it thinks just, set aside any judgment entered in
pursuance of this rule.
(7) In this rule references to the prescribed period shall be construed as references to the
period within which by virtue of paragraph (1) of Rule 18 or of any order of the Court the
plaintiff or defendant, as the context of the reference requires, is required to lodge a
preliminary act.
SPECIAL PROVISIONS AS TO PLEADINGS IN COLLISION, ETC., ACTIONS
(O.48, r.20)
20. (1) Notwithstanding anything in Rule 3 of Order 15, the plaintiff in any such suit as is
referred to in sub-paragraph (a) of Rule 2(1) may not serve a reply or a defence to counter-
claim on the defendant except with the leave of the Court.
(2) If in such a suit there is a counterclaim and no defence to counterclaim by the plaintiff,
then, notwithstanding paragraph (3) of Rule 14 of Order 15, but without prejudice to the other
provisions of that rule, there is an implied joinder of issue on the counterclaim, and the
joinder of issue operates as a denial of every material allegation of fact made in the
counterclaim.
JUDGMENT BY DEFAULT (O.48, r.21)
21. (1) Where a writ is served under paragraph (4) of Rule 8 on a party at whose instance a
caveat against arrest was issued, then if -
(a) the sum claimed in the suit begun by the writ does not exceed the amount
specified in the undertaking given by that party or his barrister and solicitor or pleader
to procure the entry of the caveat; and
(b) that party or his barrister and solicitor or pleader does not within 14 days after
service of the writ fulfil the undertaking given by him as aforesaid,
the plaintiff may, after filing an affidavit verifying the facts on which the suit is based, apply
to the Court for judgment by default.
(2) Judgment given under the last preceding paragraph may be enforced by the arrest of the
property against which the suit was brought and by committal of the party at whose instance
the caveat with respect to that property was entered.
(3) Where a defendant to an action in rem fails to enter an appearance within the time limited
for appearing, then, on the expiration of 14 days after service of the writ of summons and
upon filing an affidavit proving due service of the writ, an affidavit verifying the facts on
which the suit is based and, if a statement of claim was not indorsed on the writ, a copy of the
statement of claim, the plaintiff may apply to the Court for judgment by default.
Where the writ is deemed to have been duly served on the defendant by virtue of paragraph
(2) of Rule 1 of Order 8, or was served on the Registrar under Rule 8 of this Order, an
affidavit proving due service of the writ need not be filed under this paragraph, but the writ
indorsed as mentioned in the said paragraph (2) of Rule 1 or indorsed by the Registrar with a
statement that he accepts service of the writ must be lodged with the affidavit verifying the
facts on which the suit is based.
(4) Where a defendant to an action in rem fails to serve a defence on the plaintiff, then, after
the expiration of the period fixed by or under these rules for service of the defence and upon
filing an affidavit stating that no defence was served on him by that defendant during that
period, an affidavit verifying the facts on which the suit is based and, if a statement of claim
was not indorsed on the writ, a copy of the statement of claim, the plaintiff may apply to the
Court for judgment by default.
(5) Where a defendant to a counterclaim in an action in rem fails to serve a defence to
counterclaim on the defendant making the counterclaim, then, subject to the next following
paragraph, after the expiration of the period fixed by or under these rules for service of the
defence to counterclaim and upon filing an affidavit stating that no defence to counterclaim
was served on him by the first-mentioned defendant during that period, an affidavit verifying
the facts on which the counterclaim is based and a copy of the counterclaim, the defendant
making the counterclaim may apply to the Court for judgment by default.
(6) No application may be made under the last preceding paragraph against the plaintiff in
any such suit as is referred to in sub-paragraph (a) of Rule 2(1).
(7) An application to the Court under this rule must be made by motion and if, on the hearing
of the motion, the Court is satisfied that the applicant's claim is well founded it may give
judgment for the claim with or without a reference to the Registrar and may at the same time
order the property against which the suit or, as the case may be, counterclaim is brought to be
appraised and sold and the proceeds to be paid into court or may make such other order as it
thinks just.
(8) In default actions in rem evidence may, unless the Court otherwise orders, be given by
affidavit without any order or direction in that behalf.
(9) The Court may, on such terms as it thinks just, set aside or vary any judgment entered in
pursuance of this rule.
(10) Order 11 and Order 16, except Rule 1, shall not apply to actions in rem.
ORDER FOR SALE OF SHIP: DETERMINATION OF PRIORITY OF CLAIMS
(O.48, r.22)
22. (1) Where in an action in rem against a ship the Court has ordered the ship to be sold, any
party who has obtained or obtains judgment against the ship or proceeds of sale of the ship
may -
(a) in a case where the order for sale contains the further order referred to in the next
following paragraph, after the expiration of the period specified in the order under
sub-paragraph (a) of that paragraph; or
(b) in any other case, after obtaining judgment,
apply to the Court by motion for an order determining the order of priority of the claims
against the proceeds of sale of the ship.
(2) Where in an action in rem against a ship the Court orders the ship to be sold, it may
further order -
(a) that the order of priority of the claims against the proceeds of sale of the ship shall
not be determined until after the expiration of 90 days, or of such other period as the
Court may specify, beginning with the day on which the proceeds of sale are paid into
court;
(b) that any party to the action or to any other action is rem against the ship or the
proceeds of sale thereof may apply to the Court in the suit to which he is a party to
extend the period specified in the order;
(c) that within such time after the date of payment into court of the proceeds of sale as
the Court directs the Director of Police shall send for publication in such newspaper
as the Court may direct a notice complying with the next following paragraph.
(3) The notice referred to in sub-paragraph (c) of the last preceding paragraph must state -
(a) that the ship, naming her, has been sold by order of the Supreme Court in an action
in rem, identifying the suit;
(b) that the gross proceeds of the sale, specifying the amount thereof, have been paid
into court;
(c) that the order of priority of the claims against the said proceeds will not be
determined until after the expiration of the period, specifying it, specified in the order
for sale; and
(d) that any parson with a claim against the ship or the proceeds of sale thereof, on
which he intends to proceed to judgment should do so before the expiration of that
period.
(4) The Director of Police must lodge in the registry a copy of each newspaper in which the
notice referred to in sub-paragraph (c) of paragraph (2) appeared.
(5) The expenses incurred by the Director of Police in complying with an order of the Court
under this rule shall be included in his expenses relating to the sale of the ship.
(6) An application to the Court to extend the period referred to in sub-paragraph (a) of
paragraph (2) must be made by motion, and a copy of the notice of motion must, at least 3
days before the day fixed for the hearing thereof, be served on each party who has begun an
action in rem against the ship or the proceeds of sale thereof.
(7) In this rule "the Court'' means the judge in person.
APPRAISEMENT AND SALE OF PROPERTY (O.48, r.23)
23. (1) A commission for the appraisement and sale of any property under an order of the
Court shall not be issued until the party applying for it has filed a written request in Form No.
49 of Appendix A.
(2) Such a commission must, unless the Court otherwise orders, be executed by the Director
of Police and must be in Form No. 50 of Appendix A.
(3) A commission for appraisement and sale shall not be executed until an undertaking in
writing satisfactory to the Director of Police to play the fees and expenses of the Director on
demand has been lodged in the Director's office.
(4) The Director of Police shall pay into court the gross proceeds of the sale and property sold
by him under a commission for sale and shall bring into court the account relating to the sale,
with vouchers in support, for taxation.
(5) On the taxation of the Director's account relating to a sale any person interested in the
proceeds of the sale shall be entitled to be heard.
PAYMENT INTO AND OUT OF COURT (O.48, r.24)
24. (1) Order 19, except Rules 3, 4 and 5, shall apply in relation to an Admiralty action as it
applies to a suit for debt or damages.
(2) Subject to the next following paragraph, money paid into court shall not be paid out
except in pursuance of an order of the judge in person.
(3) The Registrar may, with the consent of the parties interested in money paid into court,
order the money to be paid out to the person entitled thereto in the following cases, that is to
say -
(a) where a claim has been referred to the Registrar for decision and all the parties to
the reference have agreed to accept the Registrar's decision and to the payment out of
any money in court in accordance with that decision;
(b) where property has been sold and the proceeds of sale thereof paid into court, and
the parties are agreed as to the persons to whom the proceeds shall be paid and the
amount to be paid to each of those persons;
(c) where in any other case there is no dispute between the parties.
ASSESSORS (O.48, r.25)
25. Trial of an Admiralty action shall be by a judge assisted by two assessors suitably
qualified to give assistance therein, unless the Court on the application of any party to the suit
or of its own motion orders otherwise; such assessors shall be appointed by the Registrar in
accordance with directions given by the Chief Justice.
ORDER LIMITING WITNESSES (O.48, r.26)
26. Upon application by any party to an Admiralty action or upon the Court's own motion,
the Court may, at or before the trial, order that the number of witnesses who may be called at
the trial, whether they are expert witnesses or not, is to be limited.
FIXING DATE FOR TRIAL, ETC. (O.48, r.27)
27. (1) The Court may at any stage of a suit, either on an application made by summons by
any party or by order made by virtue of Rule 33, fix a date for the trial and vacate or alter any
such date.
(2) Not later than 7 days after a date for the trial of the suit has been fixed, the suit must be
set down for trial -
(a) where the date was fixed on an application made under the last preceding
paragraph, by the applicant;
(b) where the date was fixed by order made by virtue of Rule 33, by the plaintiff.
Where the applicant or plaintiff does not, within the period fixed by this paragraph, set the
suit down for trial, any other party may set it down or an application may be made to the
Court to dismiss the suit for want of prosecution and, on the hearing of any such application,
the Court may order the suit to be dismissed accordingly or make such other order as it thinks
just.
(3) Not less than7 days before the date fixed for the trial, or such other period before that date
as may be specified in general directions given by the Chief Justice, the party by whom the
suit was set down for trial must, unless the Court otherwise orders, file in the registry three
copies, plus one additional copy for each of the assessors, if any, of any pleadings,
preliminary acts, notices given under paragraph (3) of Rule 18 and statements filed under
paragraph (4) of Rule 18.
(4) If a suit which has been set down for trial is settled or withdrawn it shall be the duty of all
the parties to notify the Registrar of the fact without delay and take such steps as may be
necessary to vacate the date fixed for the trial.
(5) Paragraph (4) of Rule 2 of Order 18 and Rule 1 of Order 29 shall not apply to Admiralty
actions.
STAY OF PROCEEDINGS IN COLLISION, ETC., SUITS UNTIL SECURITY
GIVEN (O.48, r.28)
28. Where an action in rem, being a suit to enforce any such claim as is referred to in sub-
paragraph (a) of Rule 2(1), is begun and a cross-action in rem arising out of the same
collision or other occurrence as the first-mentioned suit is subsequently begun, or a
counterclaim arising out of that occurrence is made in the first-mentioned suit, then -
(a) if the ship in respect of or against which the first-mentioned suit is brought has
been arrested or security given to prevent her arrest; but
(b) the ship in respect of or against which the cross-suit is brought or the counter-
claim made cannot be arrested and security has not been given to satisfy any
judgment given in favour of the party bringing the cross-suit or making the counter-
claim,
the Court may stay proceedings in the first-mentioned suit until security is given to satisfy
any judgment given in favour of that party.
INSPECTION OF SHIP, ETC. (O.48, r.29)
29. Without prejudice to its powers under Rules 2 and 3 of Order 25 and Rule 5 of Order 30,
the Court may, on the application of any party, make an order for the inspection by the
assessors, if the suit is tried with assessors, or by any party or witness, of any ship or other
property, whether real or personal, the inspection of which may be necessary or desirable for
the purpose of obtaining full information or evidence in connection with any issue in the suit.
EXAMINATION OF WITNESSES AND OTHER PERSONS (O.48, r.30)
30. (1) The power conferred by Rule 1 of Order 33 shall extend to the making of an order
authorising the examination of a witness or person on oath before a judge sitting in court as if
for the trial of the cause or matter, without that cause or matter having been set down for trial
or called on for trial.
(2) The power conferred by the said Rule 1 shall also extend to the making of an order, with
the consent of the parties, providing for the evidence of a witness being taken as if before an
examiner, but without an examiner actually being appointed or being present.
(3) Where an order is made under the last preceding paragraph, it may make provision for
any consequential matters and, subject to any provision so made the following provisions
shall have effect -
(a) the party whose witness is to be examined shall provide a shorthand writer to take
down the evidence of the witness;
(b) any representative, being a barrister and solicitor or a pleader, of either of the
parties shall have authority to administer the oath to the witness;
(c) the shorthand writer need not himself be sworn but shall certify in writing as
correct a transcript of his notes of the evidence and deliver it to the barrister and
solicitor or pleader for the party whose witness was examined, and that barrister and
solicitor or pleader shall file it in the registry;
(d) unless the parties otherwise agree or the Court otherwise orders, the transcript or a
copy therefore shall, before the transcript is filed, be made available to the barristers
and solicitors or pleaders or other persons who acted as advocates at the examination,
and if any of those persons is of opinion that the transcript does not accurately
represent the evidence he shall make a certificate specifying the corrections which in
his opinion should be made therein, and that certificate must be filed with the
transcript.
(4) In suits in which preliminary acts fall to be filed under Rule 18, an order shall not be
made under Rule 1 of Order 33 authorising any examination of a witness before the
preliminary acts have been filed, unless for special reasons the Court thinks fit so to direct.
PROCEEDINGS FOR APPORTIONMENT OF SALVAGE (O.48, r.31)
31. (1) Proceedings for the apportionment of salvage the aggregate amount of which has
already been ascertained shall be commenced by writ of summons but no pleadings shall be
required or allowed.
(2) At any time after entry of appearance by all persons served with the writ of summons or
the expiry of the time allowed therefore application for hearing of the suit may be made by
notice of motion.
(3) The notice of motion must be filed in the registry at least 7 days before the hearing of the
motion unless the Court gives leave to the contrary; a copy of the notice and one of the
affidavits must be served on every person who has entered an appearance.
(4) Any person who has not been served with the writ of summons may, if the Court so
orders, be permitted to take part in the proceedings on the hearing of the motion.
(5) On the hearing of the motion the judge may exercise any of the jurisdiction conferred by
section 556 of the Merchant Shipping Act, 1894, of England in its application to Nauru.
FILING AND SERVICE OF NOTICES OF MOTION (O.48, r.32)
32. (1) Notice of a motion in any Admiralty action, together with the affidavits, if any, in
support thereof must be filed in the registry 3 days at least before the hearing of the motion
unless the Court gives leave to the contrary.
(2) A copy of the notice of motion and of the affidavits, if any, in support thereof must be
served on all the other parties to the proceedings before the originals are filed.
AGREEMENT BETWEEN BARRISTERS AND SOLICITORS OR PLEADERS MAY
BE MADE ORDER OF COURT (O.48, r.33)
33. Any agreement in writing between the barristers and solicitors or pleaders of the parties to
an Admiralty cause or matter, dated and signed by those barristers and solicitors and pleaders,
may, if the Registrar thinks it reasonable and such as the judge would under the
circumstances allow, be filed in the registry, and the agreement shall thereupon become an
order of court and have the same effect as is such order had been made by the judge in
person.
ALL ADMIRALTY PROCEEDINGS TO BE COMMENCED BY WRIT OF
SUMMONS (O.48, r.34)
34. All Admiralty causes and matters shall be commenced by writ of summons.
LIMITATION SUIT: PARTIES (O.48, r.35)
35. (1) in a limitation suit the person seeking relief shall be the plaintiff and shall be named in
the writ by his name and not described merely as the owner of, or as bearing some other
relation to, a particular ship or other property.
(2) The plaintiff must make one of the persons with claims against him in respect of the
casualty to which the action relates defendant to the suit and may make any or all of the
others defendants also.
(3) At least one of the defendants to the suit must be named in the writ by his name but the
other defendants may be described generally and not named by their names.
(4) The writ must be served on one or more of the defendants who are named by their names
therein and need not be served on any other defendant.
(5) In this rule and Rules 36, 37 and 38 "name" includes a firm name or the name under
which a person carries on his business, and where any person with a claim against the
plaintiff in respect of the casualty to which the suit relates has described himself for the
purposes of his claim merely as the owner of, or as bearing some other relation to, a ship or
other property, he may be so described as defendant in the writ and, if so described, shall be
deemed for the purposes of the rules aforesaid to have been named in the writ by his name.
LIMITATION SUIT: SUMMONS FOR DECREE OR DIRECTIONS (O.48, r.36)
36. (1) Within 7 days after the entry of appearance by one of the defendants named by their
names in the writ, or, if none of them enters an appearance, within 7 days after the time
limited for appearing, the plaintiff, without serving a statement of claim, must take out a
summons returnable in chambers before the Registrar, asking for a decree limiting his
liability or, in default of such a decree, for directions as to the further proceedings in the suit.
(2) The summons must be supported by an affidavit or affidavits proving -
(a) the plaintiff's case in the suit; and
(b) if none of the defendants named in the writ by their names has entered an
appearance, service of the writ on at least one of the defendants so named.
(3) The affidavit in support of the summons must state -
(a) the names of all the persons who, to the knowledge of the plaintiff, have claims
against him in respect of the casualty to which the suit relates, not being defendants to
the suit who are named in the writ by their names; and
(b) the address of each of those persons, if known to the plaintiff.
(4) The summons and every affidavit in support thereof must, at least 7 clear days before the
hearing of the summons, be served on any defendant who has entered an appearance.
(5) On the hearing of the summons the Registrar, if it appears to him that it is not disputed
that the plaintiff has a right to limit his liability, shall make a decree limiting the plaintiff's
liability and fix the amount to which the liability is to be limited.
(6) On the hearing of the summons the Registrar, if it appears to him that any defendant has
not sufficient information to enable him to decide whether or not to dispute that the plaintiff
has a right to limit his liability, shall give such directions as appear to him to be appropriate
for enabling the defendant to obtain such information and shall adjourn the hearing.
(7) If on the hearing or resumed hearing of the summons the Registrar does not make a
decree limiting the plaintiff's liability, he shall give such directions as to the further
proceedings in the suit as appear to him to be appropriate.
(8) Any defendant who, after the Registrar has given directions under the last preceding
paragraph, ceases to dispute the plaintiff's right to limit his liability must forthwith file a
notice to that effect in the registry and serve a copy on the plaintiff and on any other
defendant who has entered an appearance.
(9) If every defendant who disputes the plaintiff's right to limit his liability serves a notice on
the plaintiff under the last preceding paragraph, the plaintiff may take out a summons
returnable in chambers before the Registrar asking for a decree limiting his liability and
paragraphs (4) and (5) shall apply to a summons under this paragraph as they apply to a
summons under paragraph (1).
LIMITATION SUIT: PROCEEDINGS UNDER DECREE (O.48, r.37)
37. (1) Where the only defendants in a limitation suit are those named in the writ by their
names and all the persons so named have either been served with the writ or entered an
appearance, any decree in the suit limiting the plaintiff's liability, whether made by the
Registrar or on the trial of the suit -
(a) need not be advertised; but
(b) shall only operate to protect the plaintiff in respect of claims by the persons so
named or persons claiming through or under them.
(2) In any case not falling within the last preceding paragraph, any decree in the suit limiting
the plaintiff's liability, whether made by the Registrar or on the trial of the suit -
(a) shall be advertised by the plaintiff in such manner and within such time as may be
provided by the decree; and
(b) shall fix a time within which persons with claims against the plaintiff in respect of
the casualty to which the suit relates may enter an appearance in the suit, if they have
not already done so, and file their claims, and, in cases to which Rule 38 applies, take
out a summons if they thinks fit, to set the order aside.
(3) The advertisement to be required under sub-paragraph (a) of the last preceding paragraph
shall, unless for special reasons the Registrar or judge thinks fit otherwise to provide, be a
single advertisement in each of three newspapers in Nauru or elsewhere specified in the
decree, identifying the suit, the casualty and the relation of the plaintiff thereto, whether as
owner of a ship involved in the casualty or otherwise as then case may be, stating that the
decree has been made and specifying the amounts fixed thereby as the limits of the plaintiff's
liability and the time allowed thereby for the entering of appearances, the filing of claims and
the taking out of summonses to set the decree aside.
The plaintiff must within the time fixed under sub-paragraph (b) of the last preceding
paragraph file in the registry a copy of each newspaper in which the advertisement required
under sub-paragraph (a) of that paragraph appears.
(4) The time to be allowed under sub-paragraph (b) of paragraph (2) shall, unless for special
reasons the Registrar or judge thinks fit otherwise to provide, be not less than 2 months from
the latest date allowed for the appearance of the advertisement; and after the expiration of the
time so allowed no appearance may be entered, claim filed or summons taken out to set aside
the decree except with the leave of the Registrar or, on an appeal, of the judge.
(5) Save as aforesaid, any decree limiting the plaintiff's liability, whether made by the
Registrar or on the trial of the suit, may make any such provision as is authorised by section
504 of the Merchant Shipping Act,1894, of England in its application to Nauru.
LIMITATION SUIT: PROCEEDINGS TO SET ASIDE DECREE (O.48, r.38)
38. (1) Where a decree limiting the plaintiff's liability, whether made by the Registrar or on
the trial of the suit fixes a time in accordance with paragraph (2) of Rule 37, any person with
a claim against the plaintiff in respect of the casualty to which the suit relates, who -
(a) was not named by his name in the writ as a defendant to the suit; or
(b) if so named, neither was served with the writ nor entered an appearance,
may, within that time, after an appearance, take out a summons returnable in
chambers before the Registrar asking that the decree be set aside.
(2) The summons must be supported by an affidavit or affidavits showing that the defendant
in question has a bona fide claim against the plaintiff in respect of the casualty in question
and that he has sufficient prima facie grounds for the contention that the plaintiff is not
entitled to the relief given him by the decree.
(3) The summons and every affidavit in support thereof must, at least 7 clear days before the
hearing of the summons, be served on the plaintiff and any defendant who has entered an
appearance.
(4) On the hearing of the summons the Registrar, if he is satisfied that the defendant in
question has a bona fide claim against the plaintiff and sufficient prima facie grounds for the
contention that the plaintiff is not entitled to the relief given him by the decree, shall set the
decree aside and give such directions as to the further proceedings in the suit as appear to him
to be appropriate.
_____
ORDER 49
PROBATE PROCEEDINGS+
APPLICATION AND INTERPRETATION (O.49, r.1)
1. (1) This Order applies to probate causes and matters, and the other provisions of these
Rules apply to those causes and matters subject to the provisions of this Order.
(2) In these Rules "probate suit" means a suit for the grant of probate of the will, or letters of
administration of the estate, of a deceased person or for the revocation of such a grant or for a
decree pronouncing for or against the validity of an alleged will, not being a suit which is
non-contentious or common form probate business.
(3) In this Order -
"registry" means the registry of the Supreme Court;
"will" includes a codicil.
(4) In this Order "probate causes and matters" and "probate suit" do not include proceedings
before the Nauru Lands Committee in respect of the estates and wills of Nauruans or appeals
from any decision of the said Committee.
REQUIREMENTS IN CONNECTION WITH ISSUE OF WRIT (O.49, r.2)
2. (1) A probate suit must be begun by writ of summons.
(2) Before a writ beginning a probate suit is issued it must be indorsed with a statement of the
nature of the interest of the plaintiff and of the defendant in the estate of the deceased to
which the suit relates.
(3) A writ beginning a suit for the revocation of the grant of probate of the will, or letters of
administration of the estate, of a deceased person shall not be issued unless a citation under
Rule 7 has been issued or the probate or letters of administration, as the case may be, has or
have been lodged in the registry.
SERVICE OF NOTICE OF WRIT OUT OF JURISDICTION (O.40, r.3)
3. (1) Subject to the next following paragraph, service out of Nauru of a notice of a writ by
which a probate suit is begun is permissible with the leave of the Court.
(2) Rule 3 of Order 9 shall apply in relation to an application for the grant of leave under this
rule as it applies in relation to an application for the grant of leave under Rule 1 or Rule 2 of
that Order.
INTERVENER IN PROBATE SUIT (O.49, r.4)
4. (1) A person not a party to a probate suit may apply to the Court for leave to intervene in a
probate suit.
(2) An application under this rule must be made by summons supported by an affidavit
showing the interest of the applicant in the estate of the deceased.
(3) An applicant who obtains leave to intervene in a probate suit shall not be entitled to be
heard in the suit unless he enters an appearance therein.
(4) Where the Court grants leave under this rule, it may give such directions as to the service
of pleadings, the filing of an affidavit of testamentary scripts or other matters as it thinks
necessary.
CITATION TO SEE PROCEEDINGS (O.49, r.5)
5. (1) On the application of the plaintiff, or of any other party who has pleaded in a probate
suit, a citation may be issued against any person not a party to the suit who has an adverse
interest to the applicant notifying him that if he does not enter an appearance in the suit
judgment may be given therein without further notice to him.
(2) Where a person on whom a citation under this rule is served fails to enter an appearance
in the suit, the party on whose application the citation was issued shall not be entitled to be
heard at the trial of the suit without the leave of the Court unless he has filed an affidavit
proving due service of the citation on that person.
ENTRY OF APPEARANCE (O.49, r.6)
Rules 1 and 2 of Order 10 shall apply to the entry of appearance by a person authorised to
intervene in a probate suit, and by a person cited under Rule 5, as if -
(a) that person were a defendant; and
(b) the parties to the suit in the case of an intervener, or the party at whose instance
the citation was issued in the case of a person cited, were the plaintiff.
CITATION TO BRING IN GRANT (O.49, r.7)
7. In a suit for the revocation of the grant of probate of the will, or letters of administration of
the estate, of a deceased person, a citation against the person to whom the probate or letters of
administration, as the case may be, was or were granted requiring him to bring into and leave
at the registry the probate or letters of administration, as the case may be, may be issued on
the application of the plaintiff.
CITATIONS (O.49, r.8)
8. (1) A citation under Rule 5 or Rule 7 must be issued out of the registry and must be settled
by the Registrar before it is issued.
(2) Before such a citation is issued an affidavit verifying the statements of fact to be made in
the citation must be sworn by the person applying for it to be issued:
Provided that the Registrar may in special circumstances allow the affidavit to be sworn by
that person's barrister and solicitor or pleader.
(3) Issue of a citation take place upon its being sealed by an officer of the registry.
(4) Without prejudice to Rule 4 of Order 42, a citation under Rule 5 or Rule 7 must be served
personally on the person cited.
(5) Service out of Nauru of a citation under Rule 5 or Rule 7 is permissible but, in the case of
a citation under Rule 7, only with the leave of the Registrar.
(6) Paragraphs (1) and (2) of Rule 3 of Order 9 shall apply in relation to an application for the
grant of leave under the last preceding paragraph as they apply in relation to an application
for the grant of leave under Rule 1 or Rule 2 of that Order.
(7) An order granting leave to serve a citation under Rule 7 out of Nauru must limit a time
within which the person to be served with the citation must comply with it.
(8) Rules 4, 5 and 6 of Order 9 shall apply in relation to a citation under Rule 7 as they apply
in relation to notice of a writ of summons.
AFFIDAVIT OF TESTAMENTARY SCIPTS (O.43, r.9)
9. (1) Unless the Registrar otherwise directs, the plaintiff and every defendant who has
entered an appearance in a probate suit must swear an affidavit -
(a) describing any testamentary script of the deceased person, whose estate is the
subject of the suit, of which he has any knowledge or, if such be the case, stating that
he knows of no such script; and
(b) if any such script of which he has knowledge is not in his possession or under his
control, giving the name and address of the person in whose possession or under
whose control it is or, if such be the case, stating that he does not know the name or
address of that person;
and any such script which is in the possession or under the control of the deponent must be
annexed to his affidavit.
(2) An affidavit required by this rule, together with any testamentary script annexed thereto,
must be filed within 14 days after the entry of appearance by a defendant to the suit or, if no
defendant enters an appearance therein and the Registrar does not otherwise direct, before the
suit is set down for trial.
(3) Where any testamentary script required by this rule to be filed or any part thereof is
written in pencil, then, unless the Court otherwise directs, a facsimile copy of that script, or
of the page or pages thereof containing the part written in pencil, must also be filed and the
words which appear in pencil in the original must be underlined in red ink in the copy.
(4) Except with the leave of the Registrar, a party to a probate suit shall not be allowed to
inspect an affidavit filed under this rule by any other party to the suit, or any testamentary
script annexed thereto, unless and until an affidavit sworn by him containing the information
referred to in paragraph (1) has been filed.
(5) In this rule "testamentary script" means a will or draft thereof, written instructions for a
will made by or at the request or under the instructions of the testator and any document
purporting to be evidence of the contents, or to be a copy of a will which is alleged to have
been lost or destroyed.
DEFAULT OF APPEARANCE (O.49, r.10)
10. (1) Order 11 shall not apply in relation to a probate suit.
(2) Where any of several defendants to a probate suit fails to enter an appearance, the
plaintiff, upon filing an affidavit proving due service of the writ of summon, or notice of the
writ, on that defendant may, after the time limited for appearing, proceed with the suit as if
that defendant had entered an appearance.
SERVICE OF STATEMENT OF CLAIM (O.49, r.11)
11. The plaintiff in a probate suit must, unless the Court gives leave to the contrary or a
statement of claim is indorsed on the writ of summons, serve a statement of claim on every
defendant who enters an appearance in the suit and must do so before the expiration of 6
weeks after entry of appearance by that defendant or of 14 days after the filing by him of an
affidavit under Rule 9, whichever is the later.
COUNTERCLAIM (O.49, r.12)
12. Notwithstanding anything in paragraph (1) of Rule 2 of Order 12, a defendant to a
probate suit who alleges that he has any claim or is entitled to any relief or remedy in respect
of any matter relating to the grant of probate off the will, or letters of administration of the
estate, of the deceased person which is the subject of the suit must add to his defence a
counterclaim in respect of that matter.
CONTENTS OF PLEADINGS (O.49, r.13)
13. (1) Where the plaintiff in a probate suit disputes the interest of a defendant he must allege
in his statement of claim that he denies the interest of that defendant.
(2) In a probate suit in which the interest by virtue of which a party claims to be entitled to a
grant of letters of administration is disputed, the party disputing that interest must show in his
pleading that if the allegations made therein are proved he would be entitled to an interest in
the estate.
(3) Without prejudice to Rule 7 of Order 15 any party who pleads that at the time when a
will, the subject of the suit, was alleged to have been executed the testator did not know and
approve of its contents must specify the nature of the case on which he intends to rely, and no
allegation in support of that plea which would be relevant in support of any of the following
other pleas, that is to say -
(a) that the will was not duly executed;
(b) that at the time of the execution of the will the testator was not of sound mind,
memory and understanding; and
(c) that the execution of the will was obtained by undue influence or fraud, shall be
made by that party unless that other plea is also pleaded.
DEEAULT OF PLEADINGS (O.49, r.14)
14. Order 16 shall not apply in relation to a probate suit.
DISCONTINUANCE (O.49, r.15)
15. (1) Order 18 shall not apply in relation to a probate suit.
(2) At any stage of the proceedings in a probate suit the Court may, on the application of the
plaintiff or of any party to the suit who has entered an appearance therein, order the suit to be
discontinued on such terms as to costs or otherwise as it thinks just, and may further order
that a grant of probate of the will, or letters of administration of the estate, of the deceased
person, as the case may be, which is the subject of the suit be made to the person entitled
thereto.
(3) An application for an order under this rule may be made by summons or by notice of
motion.
APPLICATION FOR ORDER TO BRING IN WILL, ETC. (O:49, r.16)
16. An application in a probate suit for an order under section 26 of the Court of Probate Act,
1857, of England in its application to Nauru requiring a person to bring into the registry a
will or other testamentary paper or to attend in court for examination may be made to the
Registrar by summons, and the summons must be served on the person against whom the
order is required.
ADMINISTRATION PENDENTE LITE (O.19, r.17)
17. (1) An application under section 163 of the Supreme Court of Judicature (Consolidation)
Act 1925 of England in its application to Nauru for the grant of administration may be made
to the Registrar by summons.
(2) An administrator to whom a grant is made under the said section 163 must at the time
when he brings proceedings for taxation of his costs, or at such other time as the Registrar
may direct, produce at the registry an account, verified by affidavit, of the moneys and other
property received or paid or otherwise dealt with by him in his capacity as such an
administrator.
(3) Unless the Court otherwise directs, the account shall be referred to the Registrar for
examination and Rules 2 and 15 of Order 40 shall, with the necessary modifications, apply in
relation to proceedings for the examination of the account as they apply in relation to
proceedings for taxation of the administrator's costs.
(4) Except where the remuneration of the administrator has been fixed by a judge, the
Registrar shall, on the completion of the examination of the administrator's account and
taxation of his costs, assess and provide for the administrator's remuneration in accordance
with the said section 163.
______
ORDER 50
PROCEEDINGS BY AND AGAINST THE REPUBLIC
(No rules made yet under this Order)
ORDER 51
PROCEEDINGS TRANSFERRED BETWEEN COURTS
APPLICATION AND INTERPRETATION (O.51, r.1)
1. (1) This Order applies to proceedings transferred from the District Court to the Supreme
Court under section 38 of the Courts Act 1972 or from the Supreme Court to the District
Court under section 39 of the said Act.
(2) In this Order, "the proper officer" means -
(a) in the Supreme Court, the Registrar; and
(b) in the District Court, the Clerk.
DUTIES OF THE PROPER OFFICERS (O.51, r.2)
2. (1) Upon an order being made for the transfer of any proceedings from one Court to
another Court, the proper officer of the Court from which the proceedings are transferred
shall transmit, or cause to be transmitted, to the proper officer of the other Court -
(a) where the whole suit has been transferred, all the documents filed it his Court
relating to the suit; and
(b) where only the proceeding relating to a counterclaim or set-off have been
transferred, a copy of the counterclaim or set-off, as the case may be, of any
subsequent pleadings in the suit and of the order for transfer,
and shall enter in the cause book of his Court details off the order for transfer.
(2) Upon receipt of the documents or copies transmitted to him under the lass preceding
paragraph, the proper officer of the Court into which the proceedings have been transferred
shall -
(a) open, or cause to be opened, a case file in respect of those proceedings;
(b) enter, or cause to be entered, in the cause book of his Court the details of the
proceedings;
(c) assign a number, or cause a number to be assigned, to the entry and mark the case-
file, or cause it to be marked, with that number;
(d) notify all the parties to the proceedings and the proper officer of the Court, from
which the proceedings were transferred of that number;
(e) issue a summons to all the parties to the proceedings requiring them to attend -
(i) in the Supreme Court, before the Registrar; or
(ii) in the District Court before the resident magistrate, for directions.
DIRECTIONS (O.51, r.3)
3. Upon the hearing of the summons for directions, the Registrar or the resident magistrate, as
the case may be, shall give such directions as appear to him to be appropriate as to the steps
to be taken in the proceedings and the parties by whom they are to be taken.
______
ORDER 52
DISABILITY
INTERPRETATION (O.52, r.1)
1. In this Order -
"the Ordinance" means the Mentally-disordered Persons Ordinance 1963-1967;
"patient" means a person who, by reason of mental disorder, is incapable of managing
and administering his property and affairs;
"person under disability" means a person who is an infant or a patient.
PERSON UNDER DISABILITY MUST SUE, ETC., BY NEXT FREND OR
GUARDIAN AD LITEM (O.52, r.2)
2. (1) A person under disability shall not bring, or make a claim in, any proceedings except
by his next friend and shall not defend, make a counterclaim or intervene in any proceedings,
or appear in any proceedings under a judgment or order notice of which has been served on
him, except by his guardian ad litem.
(2) Subject to the provisions of these Rules, anything which in the ordinary conduct of any
proceedings is required or authorised by a provision of these Rules to be done by a party to
the proceedings shall or may, if the party is a person under disability, be done by his next
friend or guardian ad litem.
NEXT FRIEND OR GUARDIAN AD LITEM TO BE APPROVED BY COURT (O.52,
r.3)
3. (1) Except where the next friend or guardian ad litem of a party to any suit is the
committee of the patient's estate appointed under section 12 of the Ordinance or has been
appointed guardian ad litem by the Court, he shall, within 7 days of issuing the writ of
summons or originating summons or entering an appearance in the suit, apply ex pate by
summons -
(a) in the Supreme Court, to the Registrar; and
(b) in the District Court, the resident magistrate,
for approval of his acting in the suit as next friend or guardian ad litem.
(2) The Registrar or the resident magistrate, as the case may be, may, if he thinks fit, adjourn
the hearing of the summons and require the attendance of the person under the disability or
the service of the summons on any other person.
(3) In deciding whether or not to grant approval to any person to act as next friend or
guardian ad litem, the Registrar or the resident magistrate, as the case may be, shall have
regard to all facts relevant to the suitability of the applicant so to act and in particular to the
wishes of the person under the disability, if they can be ascertained, and to whether the
interest of be applicant in to subject-mater of the suit conflict in any way with the interests of
the person under the disability but may, for good reason, grant approval notwithstanding that
such person does not wish the applicant so to act or that there is a conflict of interests.
(4) Where the next friend or guardian ad litem fails to make application in accordance with
paragraph (1), no further step shall be taken in the proceedings, unless the Court otherwise
orders, until a next friend or guardian ad litem of the person under disability has been
appointed by the Court and the person so failing shall be personally liable to pay costs of any
application for such an appointment to be made.
(5) Notwithstanding the provisions of paragraph (1), in proceedings commenced by
originating summons the application for approval to act as next friend or guardian ad litem
shall be made at the hearing of the summons.
CONSENT OF NEXT FRIEND OR GUARDIAN AD LITEM (O.52, r.4)
4. (1) The name of a person shall not be used in any proceedings as next friend or guardian
litem of any person under disability unless he has consented so to act either in writing or
verbally to the Court, or -
(a) in proceedings in the Supreme Court, to a judge or the Registrar, and
(b) in proceedings in the District Court, to the resident magistrate.
(2) Where the consent is given in writing, it shall be filed in the registry of the Court in which
the proceedings are being taken.
APPOINTMENT OF GUARDIAN AD LITEM WHERE PERSON UNDER
DISABILITY DOES NOT APPEAR (O.52, r.5)
5. (1) Where -
(a) in a suit against a person under disability begun by writ of summons no
appearance is entered in the suit for that person; or
(b) the defendant to a suit serves a defence and counterclaim on a person under
disability who is not already a party to the suit, and no appearance is entered for that
person,
an application for the appointment by the Court of a guardian ad litem of that person must be
made by the plaintiff or defendant, as the case may be, after the time limited, as respects that
person, for appearing and before proceeding further with the suit or counter-claim.
(2) Where a party to a suit has served on a person under disability who is not already a party
to the suit a third party notice within the meaning of Order 13 and no appearance is entered
for that person to the notice, an application for the appointment by the Court of a guardian ad
litem of that person must be made by that party after the time limited, as respects that person,
for appearing and before proceeding further with the third party proceedings.
(3) Where in any proceedings against a person under disability begun by originating
summons that person does not appear by a guardian ad litem at the hearing of the summons
the Court hearing it may appoint a guardian ad litem of that person in the proceedings or
direct that an application be made by the petitioner or applicant, as the case may be, for the
appointment of such a guardian.
(4) At any stage in proceedings under any judgment or order, notice of where has been served
on a person under disability, the Court may, if no appearance is for that person, appoint a
guardian ad litem of that person in the proceedings or direct that an application be made for
the appointment of such a guardian.
(5) An application under paragraph (1) or paragraph (2) must be supported by evidence
proving -
(a) that the person to whom the application relates is a person under disability;
(b) that the person proposed as guardian ad litem is willing and a proper person to act
as such and has no interest in the proceedings adverse to that of the person under
disability;
(c) that the writ, originating summons, defence and counterclaim or third party notice,
as the case may be, was duly served on the person under disability; and
(d) subject to the next following paragraph, that notice of the application was, after
the expiration of the time limited for appearing and at least 7 days before the day
named in the notice for hearing of the application, so served on him.
(6) If the Court so directs, notice of an application under paragraph (1) or paragraph (2) need
not be served on a person under disability.
(7) An application for the appointment of a guardian ad litem made in compliance with a
direction of the Court given under paragraph (3) or paragraph (4) must be supported by
evidence proving the matters referred to in sub-paragraphs (a) and (b) of paragraph (5).
APPLICATION TO DISCHARGE OR VARY CERTAIN ORDERS (O.52, r.6)
6. An application to the Court on behalf of a person under disability served with an order
made ex parte under Rule 8 of Order 12 for the discharge or variation of the order must be
made -
(a) if a next friend or guardian ad litem is acting for that person in the suit in which
the order is made within 14 days after the service of the order on that person;
(b) if there is no next friend or guardian ad litem acting for that person in that suit,
within14 days after the appointment of such a friend or guardian to act for him.
ADMISSION NOT TO BE IMPLIED FROM PLEADING OF PERSON UNDER
DISABILITY (O.52, r.7)
7. Notwithstanding anything in paragraph (1) of Rule 13 of Order 15, a person under
disability shall not be taken to admit the truth of any allegation of fact made in the pleading
of the opposite party by reason only that he has not traversed it in his pleadings.
DISCOVERY AND INTERROGATORIES (O.52, r.8)
8. Orders 21 and 23 shall apply to a person under disability and to his next friend or guardian
ad litem.
COMPROMISE, ETC., BY PERSON UNDER DISABILITY (O.52, r.9)
9. Where in any proceedings money is claimed by or on behalf of a person under disability,
no settlement, compromise or payment and no acceptance of money paid into court,
whenever entered into or made, shall so far as it relates to that person's claim be valid without
the approval of the Court.
APROVAL OF SETTLEMENT (O.52, r.10)
10. (1) Where, before proceedings in which a claim for money is made by or on behalf of a
person under disability, whether alone or in conjunction with any other person, are begun, an
agreement is reached for the settlement of the claim, and it is desired to obtain the Court's
approval to the settlement, then, no pleadings shall be required and immediately following
the entry of appearance by all defendants application maybe made by summons for the
settlement to be approved and by the summons application may also be made for -
(a) the approval of the Court to the settlement and such orders or directions as may be
necessary to give effect to it or as may be necessary or expedient under Rule 11; or
(b) alternatively, directions as to the further prosecution of the claim.
(2) Where in proceedings under this rule a claim is made under the Fatal Accidents Acts,
1846 to 1959, of England in their application to Nauru the originating summons must include
the particulars mentioned in section 4 of the Fatal Accidents Act, 1846, of England.
(3) In this rule "settlement" includes a compromise.
CONTROL OF MONEY RECOVERED BY PERSON UNDER DISABILITY (O.52,
r.11)
11. (1) Where in any proceedings -
(a) money is recovered by or on behalf of, or adjudged or ordered or agreed to be paid
to, or for the benefit of, a person under disability; or
(b) money paid into court is accepted by or on behalf of a party who is a person under
disability,
the money shall be dealt with in accordance with directions given by the Court, under this
rule and not otherwise.
(2) Directions given under this rule may provide that the money shall, as to the whole or any
part thereof, be paid into the Supreme Court and invested or otherwise dealt with there.
(3) Without prejudice to the foregoing provisions of this rule, directions given under this rule
may include any general or special directions that the Court thinks fit to give and, in
particular, directions as to how the money is to be applied or dealt with and as to any
payment to be made, either directly or out of the amount paid into court, to the person under
disability, or to the next friend in respect of moneys paid or expenses incurred for or on
behalf or for the benefit of the person under disability or for his maintenance or otherwise for
his benefit or to the plaintiff's barrister and solicitor or pleader in respect of costs.
(4) Where in pursuance of directions given under this rule money is paid into the Supreme
Court to be invested or otherwise dealt with there, the money, including any interest thereon,
shall not be paid out, nor shall any securities in which the money is invested, or the dividends
thereon, be sold, transferred or paid out of court, except in accordance with an order of the
Supreme Court.
(5) The foregoing provisions of this rule shall apply in relation to a counterclaim by or on
behalf of a person under disability, and a claim made by or on behalf of such a person in an
action by any other person for relief under section 504 of the Merchant Shipping Act 1894 of
England in its application to Nauru as if for references to a plaintiff and a next friend there
were substituted references to a defendant and to a guardian ad litem respectively.
PROCEEDINGS UNDER FATAL ACCIDENTS ACTS OF ENGLAND (APPLIED):
APPORTIONMENT BY COURT (O.52, r.12)
12. (1) Where a single sum of money in paid into court under Rule 1 of Order 19 in
satisfaction of causes of action arising under the Fatal Accidents Acts, 1846 to 1959, and the
Law Reform (Miscellaneous Provisions) Act, 1934, of England in their application to Nauru
and that sum is accepted, the money shall be apportioned between the different causes of
action by the Court either when giving directions for dealing with it under Rule 11, if that
rule applies, or when authorising its payment out of court.
(2) Where, in a suit in which a claim under the Fatal Accidents Acts, 1846 to 1959, of
England in their application to Nauru is made by or on behalf of more than one person, a sum
in respect of damages is adjudged or ordered or agreed to be paid in satisfaction of the claim,
or a sum of money paid into court under Rule 1 of Order 19 is accepted in satisfaction of the
cause of action under the said Acts, then the sum shall be apportioned between those persons
by the Court.
The reference in this paragraph to a sum of money paid into court shall be construed as
including a reference to part of a sum so paid being the part apportioned by the court under he
last preceding paragraph to the cause of action under the said Acts.
SERVICE OF CERTAIN DOCUMENTS ON PERSON UNDER DISABILITY (O.52, r.
13)
13. (1) Where in any proceedings a document is required to be served personally on any
person and that person is a person under disability this rule shall apply.
(2) Subject to the following provisions of this rule and to paragraph (3) of Rule 12 of Order
21 and paragraph (3) of Rule 6 of Order 23, the document must be served -
(a) in the case of an infant who is not also a patient, on his father or guardian or, if he
has no father or guardian, on the person with whom he resides or in whose care he is;
(b) in the case of a patient in respect of whose estate a committee has been appointed
under section 12 of the Ordinance, on his committee or, if no committee has been
appointed, on the person with whom he resides or in whose care he is; and must be
served in the manner required by these rules with respect to the document in question.
(3) Notwithstanding anything in the last preceding paragraph, the Court may order that a
document which has been, or is to be, served on the person under disability or on a person
other than a person mentioned in that paragraph shall be deemed to be duly served on the
person under disability.
(4) A judgment or order requiring a person to do, or refrain from doing, any act, a notice of
motion or summons for the committal of any person, and a witness summons to any person,
must, if that person is a person under disability, be served personally on him unless the Court
otherwise orders.
This paragraph shall not apply to an order for interrogatories or for discovery or inspection of
documents.
_______
ORDER 53
PARTNERS
SUITS BY AND AGAINST FIRMS WITHIN NAURU (O.53, r.1)
1. Subject to the express provisions of any written law to the contrary, any two or more
persons claiming to be entitled or alleged to be liable, as partners in respect of a cause of
action and carrying on business within Nauru may sue, or be sued in the name of the firm, if
any, of which they were partners at the time when the cause of action accrued.
DISCLOSURE OF PARTNERS' NAMES (O.53, r.2)
2. (1) Subject to the express provisions of any written law to the contrary, any defendant to a
suit brought by partners in the name of a firm may serve on the plaintiffs or their barrister and
solicitor or pleader a notice requiring them or him forthwith to furnish the defendant with a
written statement of the names and places of residence of all the persons who were partners in
the firm at the time when the cause of action accrued; and if the notice is not complied with
the Court may order the plaintiffs or their barrister and solicitor or pleader to furnish the
defendant with such a statement and to verify it on oath or otherwise as may be specified in
the order, or may order that further proceedings in the suit be stayed on such terms as the
Court may direct.
(2) When the names of the partners have been declared in compliance with a notice or order
given or made under paragraph (1), the proceedings shall continue in the name of the firm but
with the same consequences as would have ensued if the persons whose names have been so
declared had been named as plaintiffs in the writ of summons or originating summons.
(3) Paragraph (1) shall have effect in relation to a suit bought against partners in the name of
a firm as it has effect in relation to a suit brought by partners in the name of a firm but with
the substitution, for references to the defendant and the plaintiffs, of references to the plaintiff
and the defendants respectively, and with the omission of the words "or may order" to the
end.
SERVICE OF WRIT (O.53, r.3)
3. (1) Where by virtue of Rule 1 partners are sued in the name of a firm, the writ of summons
may, except in the case mentioned in the next following paragraph be served -
(a) on any one or more of the partners; or
(b) at the principal place of business of the partnership within Nauru, on any person
having at the time of service the control or management of the partnership business
there;
and, where service of the writ is effected in accordance with this paragraph, the writ shall be
deemed to have been duly served on the firm, whether or not any member of the firm is out of
Nauru.
(2) Where a partnership has, to the knowledge of the plaintiff, been dissolved before a suit
against the firm is begun, the writ by which the suit is begun must be served on every person
within Nauru sought to be made liable in the suit.
(3) Every person on whom a writ is served under paragraph (1) must at the time of service be
given a written notice stating whether he is served as a partner or as a person having the
control or management of the partnership business or both as a partner and as such a person;
and any person on whom a writ is so served but to whom no such notice is given shall be
deemed to be served as a partner.
ENTRY OF APPEARANCE IN SUIT AGAINST FIRM (O.53, r.4)
4. (1) Subject to the express provisions of any written law to the contrary, where persons are
sued as partners in the name of their firm, appearance may not be entered in the name of the
firm but only by the partners thereof in their own names, but the suit shall nevertheless
continue in the name of the firm.
(2) Where in a suit against a form the writ by which the suit is begun is served on a person as
a partner, that person, if he denies that he was a partner or liable as such at any material time,
may enter an appearance in the suit and state in his memorandum of appearance that he does
so as a person served as a partner in the defendant firm but who denies that he was a partner
at any material time.
An appearance entered in accordance with this paragraph shall, unless and until it is set aside,
be treated as an appearance for the defendant firm.
(3) Where an appearance has been entered for a defendant in accordance with the last
preceding paragraph, then –
(a) the plaintiff may either apply to the Court to set it aside on the ground that the
defendant was a partner or liable as such at a material time or may leave that question
to be determined at a later stage of the proceedings;
(b) the defendant may either apply to the Court to set aside the service of the writ on
him on the ground that he was not a partner or liable as such at a material time or may
at the proper time serve a defence on the plaintiff denying in respect of the plaintiff's
claim either his liability as a partner or the liability of the defendant firm or both.
(4) The Court may at any stage of the proceedings in a suit in which a defendant has entered
an appearance in accordance with paragraph (2), on the application of the plaintiff or of that
defendant, order that any question as to the liability of that defendant or as to the liability of
the defendant firm be tried in such manner and at such time as the Court directs.
(5) Where in a suit against a firm the writ by which the suit is begun is served on a person as
a person having the control or management or the partnership business, that person may not
enter an appearance in the suit unless he is a member of the firm sued.
ENFORCING JUDGMENT OR ORDER AGAINST FIRM (O.53, r.5)
5. (1) Where a judgment is given or order made against a firm, execution to enforce the
judgment or order may, subject to Rule 6, issue against any property of the firm within
Nauru.
(2) Where a judgment is given or an order made against a firm, execution to enforce the
judgment or order may, subject to Rule 6 and to the next following paragraph, issue against
any person who -
(a) entered an appearance in the suit as a partner;
(b) having been served as a partner with the writ of summons, failed to enter an
appearance in the suit;
(c) admitted in his pleading that he was a partner; or
(d) was adjudged to be a partner.
(3) Execution to enforce a judgment or order given or made against: a firm may not issue
against a member of the firm who was out of Nauru when the writ of summons was issued
unless he -
(a) entered an appearance in the suit as a partner;
(b) was served within Nauru with the writ as-a partner; or
(c) was, with the leave of the Court given under Order 9, served out of Nauru with the
writ or notice of the writ as a partner;
and, except as provided by paragraph (1) and by the foregoing provisions of this paragraph, a
judgment or order given or made against a firm shall not render liable, release or otherwise
affect a member of the firm who was out of Nauru when the writ was issued.
(4) Where a party who has obtained a judgment or order against a firm claims that a person is
liable to satisfy the judgment or order as being a member of the firm, and the foregoing
provisions of this rule do not apply in relation to that person, than party may apply to the
Court for leave to issue execution against that person, the application to be made by
summons which must be served personally on that person.
(5) Where the person against whom an application under the last preceding paragraph is made
does not dispute his liability, the Court hearing the application may, subject to paragraph (3),
give leave to issue execution against that person, and, where that person disputes his liability,
the Court may order that the liability of that person be tried and determined in any manner in
which any issue or question in a suit may be tried and determined.
ENFORCING JUDGMENT OR ORDER IN SUITS BETWEEN PARTNERS (O.53,
r.6)
6. (1) Execution to enforce a judgment or order given or made in -
(a) a suit by or against a firm in the name of the firm against or by a member of the
firm; or
(b) a suit by a firm in the name of the firm against a firm in the name of the firm
where those firms have one or more members in common,
shall not issue except with the leave of the Court.
(2) The Court hearing an application under this rule may give such directions, including
directions as to the taking of accounts and the making of inquiries, as may be just.
ATTACHMENT OF DEBTS OWED BY FIRM (O.53, r.7)
7. (1) A garnishee order nisi may be made under Rule 11 of Order 36 in relation to debts due
or accruing due from a firm carrying on business within Nauru notwithstanding that one or
more members of the firm is resident out of the jurisdiction.
(2) A garnishee order nisi issued under the said Rule 11 relating to such debts as aforesaid
must be served on a member of the firm within Nauru or on some other person having the
control or management of the partnership business.
(3) Where a garnishee order nisi made under the said Rule 11 of Order 36 requires a firm to
appear before the Court, an appearance by a member of the firm constitutes a sufficient
compliance with the order.
APPLICATION TO A PERSON CARRYING ON BUSINESS IN ANOTHER NAME
(O.53, r.8)
8. An individual carrying on business within the jurisdiction in a name or style other than his
own name, may be sued in that name or style as if it were the name of a firm, and Rules 2 to
7 shall, so far as applicable, apply as if he were a partner and the name in which he carries on
business were the name of his firm.
APPLICATIONS FOR ORDERS CHARGING PARTNER'S INTEREST IN
PARTNERSHIP PROPERTY, ETC. (O.53, r.9)
9. (1) Every application to the Court by a decree-holder in respect of a partner for an order
under section 26 of the Partnership Ordinance 1912 of the Territory of Papua in its
application to Nauru, which authorises the Courts to make certain orders on the application of
a decree-holder of a partner, including an order charging the partner's interest in the
partnership property, and every application to the Court by a partner of the judgment-debtor
made in consequence of the first-mentioned application must be made by summons.
(2) The Registrar may exercise the powers conferred on a judge by the said section 26.
(3) Every summons issued by a decree-holder under this rule, and every order made on such a
summons, must be served on the judgment-debtor and on such of his partners as are within
the jurisdiction or, if the partnership is a cost book company, on the judgment-debtor and the
purser of the company.
(4) Every summons issued by a partner of a judgment debtor under this rule, and every order
made on such a summons, must be served -
(a) on the decree-holder;
(b) on the judgment-debtor; and
(c) on such of the other partners of the judgment-debtor as do not join in the
application and are within the jurisdiction or, if the partnership is a cost book
company, on the purser of the company.
(5) A summons or order served in accordance with this rule on the purser of a cost book
company or, in the case of a partnership not being such a company, on some only of the
partners thereof, shall be deemed to have been served on that company or on all the partners
of that partnership, as the case may be.
_______
ORDER 54
DEFAMATION SUITS
APPLICATION (O.54, r.1)
1. These Rules apply to suits for libel or slander subject to the following rules of this Order.
INDORSEMENT OF CLAIM IN LIBEL SUIT (O.54, r.2)
2. Before a writ of summons in a suit for libel is issued it must be indorsed with a statement
giving sufficient particulars of the publications in respect of which the suit is brought to
enable them to be identified.
OBLIGATION TO GIVE PARTICULARS (O.54, r.3)
3. (1) Where in a suit for libel or slander the plaintiff alleges that the words or matters
complained of were used in a defamatory sense other than their ordinary meaning, he must
give particulars of the facts and matters on which he relies in support of such sense.
(2) Where in a suit for libel or slander the defendant alleges that, in so far as the words
complained of consist of statements of fact, they are true in substance and in fact, and in so
far as they consist of expressions of opinion, they are fair comment on a matter of public
interest, or pleads to the like effect; he must give particulars stating which of the words
complained of he alleges are statements of fact of the facts and matters he relies on in support
of the allegation that the words are true.
(3) Where in a suit for libel or slander the plaintiff alleges that the defendant maliciously
published the words or matters complained of, he need not in his statement of claim give
particulars of the facts on which he relies in support of the allegation of malice, but if the
defendant pleads that any of those words or matters are fair comment on a matter of public
interest or were published upon a privileged occasion and the plaintiff intends to allege that
the defendant was actuated by express malice, he must serve a reply giving particulars of the
facts and matters from which the malice is to be inferred.
(4) This rule shall apply in relation to a. counterclaim for libel or slander as if the party
making the counterclaim were the plaintiff and the party against whom it is made the
defendant.
PROVISIONS AS TO PAYMENT INTO COURT (O.54, r.4)
4. (1) Where in a suit for libel or slander against several defendants sued jointly the plaintiff,
in accordance with paragraph (1) of Rule 3 of Order 19, accepts money paid into court by any
of those defendants in satisfaction of his cause of action against that defendant, then
notwithstanding anything in paragraph (4) of that rule, the suit shall be stayed as against that
defendant only, but -
(a) the sum recoverable under any judgment given in the plaintiff's favour against any other
defendant in the suit by way of damages shall not exceed the amount, if any, by which the
amount of the damages exceeds the amount paid into court by the defendant as against whom
the suit has been stayed; and
(b) the plaintiff shall not be entitled to his costs of the suit against the other defendant after
the date of the payment into court unless either the amount of the damages awarded to him is
greater than the amount paid into court and accepted by him or the judge is of opinion that
there was reasonable ground for him to proceed with the suit against the other defendant.
(2) Where in a suit for libel a party pleads the defence for which section 2 of the Libel Act,
1843, of England in its application to Nauru provides, Rule 7 of Order 19 shall not apply in
relation to that pleading.
STATEMENT IN OPEN COURT (O.54, r.5)
5. (1) Where a party accepts money paid into Court in satisfaction of a cause of action for
libel or slander, the plaintiff or defendant, as the case may be, may apply to a judge in
chambers by summons for leave to make in open Court a statement in terms approved by the
judge.
(2) Where a party to a suit for libel or slander which is settled before trial desires to make a
statement in open court, an application must be made to the Court for an order that the suit be
set down for trial, and before the date fixed for the trial the statement must be submitted for
the approval of the judge before whom it is to be made.
INTERROGATORIES NOT ALLOWED IN CERTAIN CASES (O.54, r.6)
6. In a suit for libel or slander where the defendant pleads that the words or matters
complained of are fair comment on a matter of public interest or were published on a
privileged occasion, no interrogatories as to the defendant's sources of information or grounds
of belief shall be allowed.
EVIDENCE IN MITIGATION OF DAMAGES (O.54, r.7)
7. In a suit for libel or slander, in which the defendant does not by his defence assert the truth
of the statement complained of, the defendant shall not be entitled on the trial to give
evidence in chief, with a view to mitigation of damages, as to the circumstances under which
the libel or slander was published, or as to the character of the plaintiff, without the leave of
the judge, unless 7 days at least before the trial he furnishes particulars to the plaintiff of the
matters as to which he intends to give evidence.
FULFILMENT OF OFFER OF AMENDS UNDER SECTION 4 OF THE
DEFAMATION ACT, 1952, OF ENGLAND (APPLIED) (O.54, r.8)
8. (1) An application to the Supreme Court under section 4 of the Defamation Act, 1952, of
England in its application to Nauru to determine any question as to the steps to be taken in
fulfilment of an offer of amends made under that section must, unless the application is made
in the course of a suit for libel or slander in respect of the publication to which the offer
relates, be made by an originating summons; only a judge may determine such question.
(2) No appearance need be entered to an originating summons by which such an application
is made.
______
ORDER 55
MONEY LENDERS' SUITS
APPLICATION AND INTERPRETATION (O.55, r.1)
(1) These Rules apply to a moneylender's suit subject to the following rules of this Order.
(2) In this Order -
"money lender" has the meaning assigned to it by section 6 of the Moneylenders Act,
1900, of England in its application to Nauru;
"moneylender's suit" means a suit for the recovery of money lent by a moneylender or
for the enforcement of any agreement or security relating to money so lent, being a
suit brought by the lender or an assignee.
INDORSEMENT OF WRIT OF SUMMONS (O.55, r.2)
2. Before a writ of summons beginning a moneylender's suit is issued it must be indorsed
with a statement that at the time of the making of the loan or contract or the giving of the
security in question the lender was licensed as a moneylender.
PARTICULARS TO BE INCLUDED IN STATEMENT OF CLAIM (O.55, r.3)
3. Every statement of claim in a moneylender's suit, whether indorsed on the writ or not, must
state –
(a) the date on which the loan was made;
(b) the amount actually lent to the borrower;
(c) the rate per cent per annum of interest charged;
(d) the date when the contract for repayment was made;
(e) the fact that a note or memorandum of the contract was made and was signed by
the borrower;
(f) the date when a copy of the note or memorandum was delivered or sent to the
borrower;
(g) the amount repaid;
(h) the amount due but unpaid;
(i) the date upon which such unpaid sum or sums became due; and
(j) the amount of interest accrued due and unpaid on every such sum.
JUDGMENT IN DEFAULT OF APPEARANCE OR OF DEFENCE (O.55, r.4)
4. (1) in a moneylender's suit judgment in default of appearance or in default of defence shall
not be entered except with the leave of the Court.
(2) An application for the grant of leave under this rule must be made by summons, and the
summons must, notwithstanding anything in Rule 9 of Order 42, be served on the defendant.
(3) If the application is for leave to enter judgment in default of appearance, the summons
shall not be issued until after the time limited for appearing.
(4) On the hearing of such an application, whether the defendant appears or not, the Court
may exercise the powers of the Court under subsection (1) of section 1 of the Moneylenders
Act, 1900, of England as extended by section 10 of the Moneylenders Act, 1927, of England
in their application to Nauru.
______
ORDER 56
ADMINISTRATION AND SIMILAR SUIT
INTERPRETATION (O.56, r.1)
1. In this Order "administration suit" means a suit for the administration under the direction
of the Court of the estate of a deceased person or for the execution under the direction of the
Court of a trust.
DETERMINATION OF QUESTIONS, ETC., WITHOUT ADMINISTRATION (O.56,
r.2)
2. (1) A suit may be brought for the determination of any question or for any relief which
could be determined or granted, as the case may be, in an administration suit and a claim
need not be made in the suit for the administration or execution under the direction of the
Court of the estate or trust in connection with which the question arises or the relief is sought.
(2) Without prejudice to the generality of the last preceding paragraph, a suit may be brought
for the determination of any of the following questions -
(a) any question arising in the administration of the estate of a deceased person or in
the execution of a trust;
(b) any question as to the composition of any class of persons having a claim against
the estate of a deceased person or a beneficial interest in the estate of such a person or
in any property subject to a trust;
(c) any question as to the rights or interests of a person claiming to be a creditor of the
estate of a deceased person or to be entitled under a will or on the intestacy of a
deceased person or to be beneficially entitled under a trust.
(3) Without prejudice to the generality of paragraph (1), a suit may be brought for any of the
following reliefs -
(a) an order requiring an executor, administrator or trustee to furnish and, if necessary,
verify accounts;
(b) an order requiring the payment into court of money held by a person in his
capacity as executor, administrator or trustee;
(c) an order directing a person to do or abstain from doing a particular act in his
capacity as executor, administrator or trustee;
(d) an order approving any sale, purchase, compromise or other transaction by a
person in his capacity as executor, administrator or trustee;
(e) an order directing any act to be done in the administration of the estate of a
deceased person or in the execution of a trust which the Court could order to be done
if the estate or trust were being administered or executed, as the case may be, under
the direction of the Court.
PARTIES (O.56, r.3)
3. (1) All the executors or administrators of the estate or trustees of the trust, as the case may
be, to which an administration suit or such a suit as is referred to in Rule 2 relates must he
parties to the suit, and where the suit is brought by executors, administrators or trustees, any
of them who does not consent to being joined as a plaintiff must be made a defendant.
(2) Notwithstanding anything in paragraph (2) of Rule 5 of Order 12, and without prejudice
to the powers of the Court under that Order, all the persons having a beneficial interest in or
claim against the estate or having a beneficial interest under the trust, as the case may be, to
which such a suit as is mentioned in the last preceding paragraph relates need not be parties
to the suit; but the plaintiff may make such of those persons, whether all or any one or more
of them, parties as, having regard to the nature of the relief or remedy claimed in the suit, he
thinks fit.
(3) Where, in proceedings under a judgment or order given or made in a suit for the
administration under the direction of the Court of the estate of a deceased person, a claim in
respect of a debt or other liability is made against the estate by a person not a party to the suit,
no party other than the executors or administrators of the estate shall be entitled to appear in
any proceedings relating to that claim without the leave of the Court, and the Court may
direct or allow any other party to appear either in addition or in substitution for, the executors
or administrators on such terms as to costs or otherwise as it thinks fit.
JUDGMENTS AND ORDERS IN ADMINISTRATION SUITS (O.56, r.4)
(1) A judgment or order for the administration or execution under the direction of the Court
of an estate or trust need not be given or made unless in the opinion of the Court the
questions at issue between the parties cannot properly be determined otherwise than under
such a judgment or order.
(2) Where an administration suit is brought by a creditor of the estate of a deceased person or
by a person claiming to be entitled under a will or on the intestacy of a deceased person or to
be beneficially entitled under a trust, and the plaintiff alleges that no or insufficient accounts
have been furnished by the executors, administrators or trustees, as the case may be, then,
without prejudice to its other powers, the Court may –
(a) order that proceedings in the suit be stayed for a period specified in the order and
that the executors, administrators or trustees, as the case may be, shall within that
period furnish the plaintiff with proper accounts;
(b) if necessary to prevent proceedings by other creditors or by other persons claiming
to be entitled as aforesaid, give judgment or make an order for the administration of
the estate to which the suit relates and include therein an order that no proceedings are
to be taken under the judgment or order, or under any particular account or inquiry
directed, without the leave of the judge in person.
CONDUCT OF SALE OF TRUST PROPERTY (O.56, r.5)
5. Where in an administration suit an order is made for the sale of any property vested in
executors, administrators or trustees, those executors, administrators or trustees, as the case
may be, shall have the conduct of the sale unless the Court otherwise directs.
______
ORDER 57
SUITS FOR SPECIFIC PERFORMANCE, ETC.:
SUMMARY JUDGMENT
APPLICATION BY PLAINTIFF FOR SUMMARY JUDGMENT (O.57, r.1)
1. (1) In any suit begun by writ of summons indorsed with a claim -
(a) for specific performance of an agreement, whether in writing or not, for the sale,
purchase or exchange of any property, or for the grant or assignment of a lease of any
property, with or without an alternative claim for damages;
(b) for rescission of such an agreement; or
(c) for the forfeiture or return of any deposit made under such an agreement,
the plaintiff may, on the ground that the defendant has no defence to the suit, apply to the
Court for judgment.
(2) An application may be made against a defendant under this rule whether or not he has
entered an appearance in the suit.
MANNER IN WHICH APPLICATION UNDER RULE 1 MUST BE MADE (O.57, r.2)
2. (1) An application under Rule 1 must be made by summons supported by an affidavit made
by some person who can swear positively to the facts verifying the cause of action and stating
that in his belief there is no defence to the suit.
(2) The summons must set out or have attached thereto minutes of the judgment sought by
the plaintiff.
(3) The summons, a copy of the affidavit in support and of any exhibit referred to therein
must be served on the defendant not less than 4 clear days before the return day.
JUDGMENT FOR PLAINTIFF (O.57, r.3)
3. Unless on the hearing of an application under Rule 1 either the Court dismisses the
application or the defendant satisfies the Court that there is an issue or question in dispute
which ought to be tried or that there ought for some other reason to be a trial of the suit, the
Court may give judgment for the plaintiff in the suit.
LEAVE TO DEFEND (O.57, r.4)
4. (1) A defendant may show cause against an application under Rule 1 by affidavit or
otherwise to the satisfaction of the Court.
(2) The Court may give a defendant against whom such an application is made leave to
defend the suit either unconditionally or on such terms as to giving security or time or mode
of trial or otherwise as it thinks fit.
(3) On the hearing of such an application the Court may order a defendant showing cause or,
where that defendant is a body corporate, any director, manager, secretary or other similar
officer thereof, or any person purporting to act in any such capacity –
(a) to produce any document;
(b) if it appears to the Court that there are special circumstances which make it
desirable that he should do so, to attend and be examined on oath.
DIRECTIONS (O.57, r.5)
5. Where the Court orders that a defendant have leave to defend the suit, the Court shall give
directions as to the further conduct of the suit.
COSTS (O.57, r.6)
6. If the plaintiff makes an application under Rule 1 where the case is not within this Order,
or if it appears to the Court that the plaintiff knew that the defendant relied on a contention
which would entitle him to unconditional leave to defend, then, without prejudice to Order
40, and, in particular, to Rule 5 thereof, the Court may dismiss the application with costs and
require the costs to be paid by his forthwith.
SETTING ASIDE JUDGMENT (O.57, r.7)
7. Any judgment given against a defendant who does not appear at the hearing of an
application under Rule 1 may be set aside or varied by the Court on such terms as it thinks
just.
______
ORDER 58
DEBENTURES HOLDERS' SUITS: RECEIVER'S REGISTER
RECEIVER'S REGISTER (O.58, r.1)
1. Every receiver appointed by a Court in a suit to enforce registered debentures or registered
debenture stock shall, if so directed by the Court, keep a register or transfers of, and other
transmissions of title to, such debentures or stock, in this Order referred to as "the receiver's
register".
REGISTRATION OF TRANSFERS (O.58, r. 2)
2. (1) Where a receiver is required by Rule 1 to keep a receiver's register, then, on the
application of any person entitled to any debentures or debenture stock by virtue of any
transfer or other transmission of title, and on production of such evidence of identity and title
as the receiver may reasonably require, the receiver shall, subject to the following provisions
of this rule, register the transfer or other transmission of title in that register.
(2) Before registering a transfer the receiver must, unless the due execution of the transfer is
proved by affidavit, send by post, airmail if available, to the registered holder of the
debentures or debenture stock transferred at his registered address a notice stating –
(a) that an application for the registration of the transfer has been made; and
(b) that the transfer will be registered unless within the period specified in the notice
the holder informs the receiver that he objects to the registration,
and no transfer shall be registered until the period so specified has elapsed.
The period to be specified in the notice shall in no case be less than 7 days after a reply form
the registered holder would in the ordinary course of post, airmail if available, reach the
receiver if the holder had replied to the notice on the day following the day when in the
ordinary course of post the notice would have been delivered at the place to which it was
addressed.
(3) On registering a transfer or other transmission of title under this rule the receiver must
indorse a memorandum thereof on the debenture or certificate of debenture stock, as the case
may be, transferred or transmitted, containing a reference to the suit and to the order
appointing him receiver.
APPLICATION FOR RECTIFICATION OF RECEIVER'S REGISTER (O.58, r.3)
3. (1) Any person aggrieved by any thing done or omission made by a receiver under Rule 2
may apply to the Court for rectification of the receiver's register, the application to be made
by summons in the suit in which the receiver was appointed.
(2) The summons shall in the first instance be served only on the plaintiff or other party
having the conduct of the suit by the Court may direct the summons or notice of the
application to be served on any other person appearing to be interested.
(3) The Court hearing an application under this rule may decide any question relating to the
title of any person who is party to the application to have his name entered in or omitted from
the receiver's register and generally may decide any question necessary or expedient to be
decided for the rectification of that register.
RECEIVER'S REGISTER EVIDENCE OF TRANSFERS, ETC. (O.58, r.4)
4. Any entry made in the receiver's register, if verified by an affidavit made by the receiver or
by such other person as the Court may direct, shall in all proceedings in the suit in which the
receiver was appointed be evidence of the transfer or transmission of title to which the entry
relates and, in particular, shall be accepted as evidence thereof for the purpose of any
distribution of assets, notwithstanding that the transfer or transmission has taken place after
the making of a certificate in the suit certifying the holders of the debentures or debenture
stock certificates.
PROOF OF TITLE OF HOLDER OF BEARER DEBENTURE, ETC. (O.58, r.5)
5. (1) This rule applies in relation to a suit to enforce bearer debentures or to enforce
debenture stock in respect of which the corporation has issued debenture bearer certificates.
(2) Notwithstanding that judgment has been given in the suit and that a certificate has been
made therein certifying the holders of such debentures or certificates as are referred to in the
last preceding paragraph, the title of any person claiming to be such a holder shall, in the
absence of notice of any defect in the title, be sufficiently proved by the production of the
debenture or debenture stock certificate, as the case may be, together with a certificate of
identification signed by the person producing the debenture or certificate identifying the
debenture or certificate produced and certifying the person, giving his name and address, who
is the holder thereof.
(3) Where such a debenture or certificate is as referred to in paragraph (1) is produced in the
chambers of the judge, the barrister and solicitor or pleader of the plaintiff in the suit must
cause to be indorsed thereon a notice stating -
(a) that the person whose name and address is specified in the notice, being the person
named as the holder of the debenture or certificate in the certificate of identification
produced under the last preceding paragraph, has been recorded in the chambers of
the judge as the holder of the debenture or debenture stock certificate, as the case may
be;
(b) that that person will, on producing the debenture or debenture stock certificate, as
the case may be, be entitled to receive payment of any dividend in respect of that
debenture or stock unless before payment a new holder proves his title in accordance
with the last preceding paragraph; and
(c) that if a new holder neglects to prove his title as aforesaid he may incur additional
delay, trouble and expense in obtaining payment.
(4) The barrister and solicitor or pleader of the plaintiff in the suit must preserve any
certificates of identification produced under paragraph (2) and must keep a record of the
debentures and debenture stock certificates so produced and of the names and addresses of
the persons producing them and of the holders thereof, and, if the Court requires it, must
verify the record by affidavit.
REQUIREMENTS IN CONNECTION WITH PAYMENTS (O.58, r.6)
6. (1) Where in a suit to enforce any debentures or debenture stock an order is made for
payment in respect of the debentures or stock, the Registrar shall not make a payment in
respect of any such debenture or stock unless either there is produced to him the certificate
for which the next following paragraph provides or the Court has in the case in question for
special reason dispensed with the need for the certificate and directed payment to be made
without it.
(2) For the purpose of obtaining any such payment the debenture or debenture stock
certificate must be produced to the barrister and solicitor or pleader of the plaintiff in the suit
or to such other person as the Court may direct, and that barrister and solicitor, pleader or
person must indorse thereon a memorandum of payment and must make and sign a certificate
certifying that the statement set out in the certificate has been indorsed on the debenture or
debenture stock certificate, as the case may be, and send the certificate to the Registrar.
______
ORDER 59
MORTGAGE SUITS
APPLICATION AND INTERPREATION (O.59, r.1)
1. (1) This Order applies to any suit by a mortgagee or mortgagor or by any person having the
right to foreclose or redeem any mortgage, being a suit in which there is a claim for any of
the following reliefs, namely -
(a) payment of moneys secured by the mortgage;
(b) sale of the mortgaged property;
(c) foreclosure;
(d) delivery of possession, whether before or after foreclosure or without foreclosure,
to the mortgagee by the mortgagor or by any other person who is or is alleged to be in
possession of the property;
(e) redemption;
(f) reconveyance of the property or its release from the security;
(g) delivery of possession by the mortgagee.
(2) In this Order "mortgage" includes a legal and an equitable mortgage and a legal and an
equitable charge, and references to a mortgagor, a mortgagee and mortgaged property shall
be construed accordingly.
(3) A suit to which this Order applies is referred to in this Order as a mortgage suit.
(4) These Rules apply to mortgage suits subject to the following provisions of this Order.
JUDGMENT IN DEFAULT (O.59, r.2)
2. (1) Notwithstanding anything in Order 11 or Order 16, in a mortgage suit judgment in
default of appearance or in default of defence shall not be entered except with the leave of the
Court.
(2) An application for the grant of leave under this rule must be made by summons and the
summons must, notwithstanding anything in Rule 9 of Order 42, be served on the defendant.
(3) Not less than 4 clear days before the day fixed for the first hearing of the summons the
plaintiff must cause the summons and a copy of the affidavit in support of the summons to be
served on the defendant.
(4) Where the plaintiff claims delivery of possession there must be indorsed on the outside
fold of the copy of the affidavit served on the defendant a notice informing the defendant that
the plaintiff intends at the hearing to apply for an order to the defendant to deliver up to the
plaintiff possession of the mortgaged property and for such other relief, if any, claimed by the
writ as the plaintiff intends to apply for at the hearing.
(5) Where the hearing is adjourned, then, subject to any directions given by the Court, notice
of the appointment for the adjourned hearing, together with a copy of any further affidavit
intended to be used at that hearing, must be served on the defendant not less than 2 clear days
before the day fixed for the hearing.
A copy of any affidavit served under this paragraph must be indorsed in accordance with
paragraph (4).
(6) A copy of any exhibit to an affidavit need not accompany the copy of the affidavit served
under paragraph (3) or paragraph (5).
(7) Where a summons for leave under this rule is issued in a mortgage suit in which the
plaintiff is the mortgagee and claims delivery of possession or payment of moneys secured by
the mortgage or both, the affidavit in support of the summons must -
(a) exhibit a true copy of the mortgage and the original mortgage or, in the case of a
registered charge, the charge certificate must be produced at the hearing of the
summons;
(b) where the plaintiff claims delivery of possession, show the circumstances under
which the right to possession arises and, except where the Court in any case or class
otherwise directs, the state of the account between the mortgagor and mortgagee with
particulars of –
(i) the amount of the advance;
(ii) the amount of the repayments;
(iii) the amount of any interest or instalments in arrear at the date of issue of
the writ and at the date of the affidavit; and
(iv) the amount remaining due under the mortgage;
(c) where the plaintiff claims delivery of possession, give particulars of every person
who to the best of the plaintiff's knowledge is in possession of the mortgaged
property;
(d) if the mortgage creates a tenancy other than a tenancy at will between mortgagor
and mortgagee, show how and when the tenancy was determined and if by service of
notice when the notice was duly served;
(e) where the plaintiff claims payment of moneys secured by the mortgage, the
affidavit must prove that the money is due and payable and give the particular
mentioned in sub-paragraph (b); and
(f) where the plaintiff's claim includes a claim for interest to judgment, state the
amount of a day's interest.
FORECLOSURE IN REDEMPTION SUIT (O.59, r.3)
3. Where foreclosure has taken place by reason of the failure of the plaintiff in a mortgage
suit for redemption to redeem, the defendant in whose favour the foreclosure has taken place
may apply by motion or summons for an order for delivery to him of possession of the
mortgaged property, and the Court may make such order thereon as it thinks fit.
_____
ORDER 60
CHILDREN
(No rules made under this Order yet)
_____
ORDER 61
BILLS OF SALE ACTS OF ENGLAND (APPLIED)
RECTIFICATION OF REGISTER (O.61, r.1)
1. (1) Every application to the Supreme Court under section 14 of the Bills of Sale Act, 1878,
of England in its application to Nauru for an order -
(a) that any omission to register a bill of sale or an affidavit of renewal thereof within
the time prescribed by that Act be rectified by extending the time for such
registration; or
(b) that any omission or mis-statement of the name, residence or occupation of any
person be rectified by the insertion in the register of his true name, residence or
occupation,
must be made by affidavit ex parte to the Registrar.
(2) Every application for such an order as is described in the last preceding paragraph shall be
supported by an affidavit setting out particulars of the bill of sale and of the omission or mis-
statement in question and stating the grounds on which the application is made.
ENTRY OF SATISFACTION (O.61, r.2)
(1) Every application under section 15 of the Bills of Sale Act, 1878, of England in its
application to Nauru to the Registrar for an order that a memorandum of satisfaction be
written on a registered copy of a bill of sale must -
(a) if a consent to the satisfaction signed by the person entitled to the benefit of the
bill of sale can be obtained, be made ex parte;
(b) in all other cases, be made by originating summons.
(2) An ex parte application under sub-paragraph (a) of the last preceding paragraph must be
supported by -
(a) particulars of the consent referred to in that sub-paragraph; and
(b) an affidavit by a witness who attested the consent verifying the signature on it.
(3) An originating summons under sub-paragraph (b) of paragraph (1) must be served on the
person entitled to the benefit of the bill of sale and must be supported by evidence that the
debt, if any, for which the bill of sale was made has been satisfied or discharged.
(4) No appearance need be entered to an originating summons under sub-paragraph (b) of
paragraph (1).
RESTRAINING REMOVAL OR SALE OF GOODS SEIZED (O.61, r.3)
3. An application to the Supreme Court under the proviso to section 7 of the Bills of Sale Act
(1878) Amendment Act, 1882, of England in its application to Nauru must be made by
originating summons, to which no appearance need be entered.
SEARCH OF REGISTER (O.61, r.4)
4. The Registrar of the Supreme Court shall, on a request in writing giving sufficient
particulars, and on payment of the prescribed fee, cause a search to be made in the register of
bills of sale and issue a certificate of the result of the search.
_____
ORDER 62
LIMITATION ACT 1963 OF ENGLAND (APPLIED)
EXERCISE OF JURISDICTION (O.62, r.1)
1. (1) Subject to the next following paragraph, the jurisdiction of the Courts to grant leave for
the purposes of section 1 of the Limitation Act 1963 of England in its application to Nauru
shall be exercised -
(a) in the Supreme Court, by a judge in chambers; and
(b) in the District Court, by the resident magistrate in chambers.
(2) The last preceding paragraph shall not apply in relation to an application for the grant of
leave for the purposes of the said section 1 made during the trial of the relevant suit.
(3) In this Order "relevant suit" has the same meaning as "relevant action" in section 2 of the
Limitation Act, 1963, of England in its application to Nauru.
APPLICATION FOR LEAVE (O.62, r.2)
2. (1) An application for the grant of leave for the purposes of the said section 1 made before
the trial of the relevant suit must be made by ex parte summons which shall, if the application
is made before the commencement of the relevant suit, be an ex parte originating summons.
(2) The summons by which any such application is made must specify the cause of action to
which the application relates and must be supported by an affidavit to which in the case of an
application made before the commencement of the relevant suit, the statement of claim
proposed to be served in that suit must be exhibited.
(3) The requirement in subsection (1) of section 2 of the Limitation Act, 1963 of England in
its application to Nauru that an application for the leave of the Court for the purposes of
section 1 thereof shall be made ex parte shall not apply if the application is made during the
trial of the relevant suit.
COPY OF ORDER GRANTING LEAVE TO BE SERVED (O.62, r.3)
3. Where the judge or resident magistrate makes an order granting leave for the purposes of
the said section 1 on an application made before the trial of the relevant suit, a copy of the
order must be served -
(a) if the application was made before the commencement of that suit with the writ of
summons by which that suit was begun; and
(b) if the application was made after the commencement of that suit, on each
defendant to that suit, whether or not he has entered an appearance therein.
______
APPENDIX A
FORMS
1. Writ of summons (O.5, r.1)
2. Originating summons (O.6, r.1)
3. Originating summons in a suit under section 14 (O.6, r.2)
4. Notice of motion (O.7, r.2)
5. Interlocutory summons (O.7, r.2)
6. Notice of payment into court (O.5, r.3) (O.19, r.1)
7. Memorandum of appearance (O.10, r.2)
8. Memorandum of appearance of third party/added defendant (O.10, r.2)
9. Notice to be endorsed on counterclaim (O.12, r.3)
10. Notice of Counterclaim (O.12, r.4)
11. Summons to added party (O.12, r.9)
12. Third party notice (O.13, r.1)
13. Third party notice (O.13, r.1)
14. Notice to a third party in a suit under section 14 (O.13, r.7)
15. Writ of summons in a suit of interpleader (O.14, r.2)
16. Notice of acceptance of money paid into court (O.19, r.3)
17. List of documents (O.21, r.3)
18. Affidavit on discovery (O.21, r.3)
19. Request for hearing date (O.29, r.2)
20. Notice of hearing date (O.29, r.6)
21. Witness summons (O.32, r.14)
22. Commission to take a deposition (O.33, r.1)
23. Order for letter of request (O.33, r.2)
24. Commission to person outside Nauru (O.33, r.2)
25. Letter of request (O.33, r.3)
26. Decree (O.35, r.1)
27. Default judgment (O.35, r.2)
28. Writ of attachment or seizure and sale (O.36, r.5)
29. Writ of delivery (O.36, r.5)
30. Summons to judgment-debtor to attend and be examined (O.36, r.5)
31. Warrant for the arrest of a judgment-debtor (O.35, r.5)
32. Warrant for the arrest and detention of a judgment-debtor (O.36, r.5)
33. Writ for act ordered by Court to be done by an authorised person (O.36, r.5)
34. Notice to show cause why salary or wages should not be attached (O.36, r.10)
35. Notice to employer of attachment of salary or wages (O.36, r.10)
36. Garnishee order nisi (O.36, r.11)
37. Writ of summons in suit for an order of mandamus, etc. (O.38. r, 3)
38. Notice of taxation of costs (O.40, r.2)
39. Writ of summons commencing an Admiralty action in rem (O.48, r.3)
40. Warrant of arrest in Admiralty action in rem (O.48, r.5)
41. Request for issue of warrant (O.48, r.5)
42. Request for caveat against arrest (O.48, r.6)
43. Request for service of writ of summons by Director of Police (O.48, r.8)
44. Release of arrested property (O.48, r.13)
45. Request for release of arrested property (O.48, r.13)
46. Request for caveat against release and payment (O.48, r.14)
47. Request for withdrawal of caveat (O.48, r.15)
48. Bail bond in Admiralty action in rem (O.48, r. 16)
49. Request for commission for appraisement and sale (O.48, r.23)
50. Commission for appraisement and sale (O.48, r.23)
51. Notice to person who may be entitled to debt sought to be attached (O.36, r.11)
______
FORM NO. CIV/1
RULES OF COURT
(O.5, r.1)
WRIT OF SUMMONS
In the (Supreme Court) Civil Suit No.
(District Court)
Between
A.B., plaintiff
and
C.D., defendant
OR In the matter of
To C.D. of (a)
A.B. of (b)
claims as follows - (either set out claim briefly or set out the Statement of Claim in full here)
and claims also the costs of this suit.
If you dispute the plaintiff's claim, wholly or in part, you are required within 14 days of
service of this writ on you, inclusive of the day of service, to enter an appearance in this suit
by lodging at the office of this Court at the Court House at Yaren a properly completed
memorandum of appearance in Form No. CIV/7.The memorandum may be lodged by
personal delivery or be sent by post. It may be sent or delivered by you or by a barrister and
solicitor or pleader on your behalf. It must be accompanied by a copy of the memorandum;
that copy will be stamped and returned to you.
If you do not intend to be represented by a barrister and solicitor or pleader and you attend
with this writ at the office of this Court at the Court House at Yaren on any day, other than a
Saturday, Sunday or public holiday, between 8.45 a.m. and 11.00 a.m. or between 2.00 p.m.
and 4.00 p.m. within 14 days of service of this writ on you, inclusive of the day of service, a
member of the staff of this Court will assist you to prepare the memorandum of appearance.
PLEASE NOTE THAT, IF NO APPEARANCE IS ENTERED BY YOU OR ON YOUR
BEHALF WITHIN THE TIME ALLOWED, I.E. 14 DAYS, JUDGMENT MAY BE GIVEN
AGAINST YOU WITHOUT ANY FURTHER NOTICE TO YOU.
+If the amount claimed and $ ............ in respect of costs are paid to the plaintiff or his
barrister and solicitor or to the Registrar*/Clerk of the Court, with notice to the plaintiff or his
barrister and solicitor*/pleader, within 14 days after service of this writ on you, inclusive of
the day of service, further proceedings will be stayed.
Issued this …………... day of ………………… 19… by the plaintiff*/E.F., barrister and
solicitor*/pleader for the plaintiff.
The plaintiff's address for service in this suit is (c)
(a) address of defendant
(b) address of plaintiff
(c) address within Nauru
+ delete if claim is not for a debt or liquidated demand only
* delete whichever is not applicable.
______
FORM NO. CIV/2
RULES OF COURT
(O.6, r.1)
ORIGINATING SUMMONS
Civil Cause No.
In the Supreme Court
A.B., applicant
Let the applicant be heard by a judge*/the Registrar in chambers at the Court House at Yaren
on ………………… 19…….. at a.m./p.m. on this application for (state nature of application).
Issued this ……………. day of ……………… 19……. by the plaintiff* E.F., barrister and
solicitor*/pleader for the plaintiff.
The plaintiff's address for service in this matter is (a).
(a) address of plaintiff
* delete whichever is not applicable
______
FORM NO. CIV/3
RULES OF COURT
(O.6, r.2)
ORIGINATING SUMMONS IN A SUIT UNDER SECTION 14
Civil Suit No.
In the District Court
Between
A.B., plaintiff
and
C.D., defendant
To C.D. of (a)
A.B. of (b)
claims from you $ .............. in respect of (state nature of claim) and claims the costs of this
suit.
If you dispute the plaintiff's claim, wholly or in part, you are hereby required to attend before
the District Court at the Court House at Yaren at …….. a.m./p.m. on the …………….. day of
…………………. 19….. for the hearing of this suit.
PLEASE NOTE THAT, IF YOU DO NOT ATTEND AS REQUIRED, THE SUIT WILL BE
HEARD AND DETERMINED IN YOUR ABSENCE.
If you have any claim against the plaintiff which is not yet the subject of any suit in any
Court but which you wish to bring before a Court at this stage so that it is dealt with at the
same time as the plaintiff's claim against you, you must serve on the plaintiff a notice of your
claim in Form No. CIV/10 not later than the ……………. day of …………….. 19…. (c). The
form can be obtained from the Court at the Court House at Yaren and the Clerk will, on
request, explain how it should be completed.
(a) address of defendant
(b) address of plaintiff
(c) two days before date for attendance shown in this summons
* delete whichever is not applicable
Issued this ……………. day of ……………… 19….. by the plaintiff*/E.F., barrister and
solicitor*/pleader for the plaintiff.
If you do not dispute the claim you should pay to the Clerk of this Court the amount claimed
and $ .......... in respect of costs, a total of $............, on or before (c) …………..…; otherwise
you will be liable to pay a larger amount in respect of costs.
______
FORM NO. CIV/4
RULES OF COURT
(O.7, r.2)
NOTICE OF MOTION
(Heading as in writ of summons)
TAKE NOTICE that the ………………….. Court will be moved on the ………………….
day of …………………… 19………… by */on behalf of the plaintiff */defendant for an
order that (State order sought) and that the costs of and incidental to this application be paid
by …………. .
Dated the ……………… day of …………………… 19.… .
To: ………………………………….
(Signed)
*delete whichever is not applicable.
______
FORM NO. CIV/5
RULES OF COURT
(0.7, r.2)
INTERLOCUTORY SUMMONS
(Heading as in writ of summons)
Let all parties attend before a judge*/a magistrate*/the Registrar in chambers at the Court
House at Yaren on the ……………… day of …………………….. 19.…. for the hearing of
an application made by*/on behalf of the plaintiff*/defendant for an order that (state order
sought) and that the costs of and incidental to this application be paid by …………….. .
Dated the ………………. day of ………………… 19.… .
To: ……………………………….
(Signed)
* delete whichever is not applicable.
______
FORM NO. CIV/6
RULES OF COURT
(O.5, r.3)
(O.19, r.1)
NOTICE OF PAYMENT INTO COURT
(heading in a suit)
TAKE NOTICE THAT –
The defendant ……………….. has paid $ ....................... into court.
The said $ …………… is in satisfaction of the cause of action */all the causes of action in
respect of which the plaintiff claims */ and after taking into account and satisfying the above-
named defendant's cause of action for ………………………….. in respect of which he
counterclaims.
or
The said $ .................... is in satisfaction of the following causes of action in respect of which
the plaintiff claims, namely, ……………………. */and after taking into account (as above)
or
Of the said $ ................, $ ................... is in satisfaction of the plaintiff's cause(s) of action for
………………….*/and after taking into account (as above) and $ ................. is in satisfaction
of the plaintiff's cause(s) of action for ……………. */and after taking into account (as
above).
Dated the ………………… day of ……………………… 19..… .
*delete if inapplicable.
______
FORM NO. CIV/7
RULES OF COURT
(O.10 , r.2)
MEMORANDUM OF APPEARANCE
(Heading as in writ of summons)
Please enter an appearance *to the counterclaim for (a) …………………. *sued as (state
representative capacity if any) whose address is (b) ………………………. .
Signed (c)
(a) name of party entering appearance
(b) address in Nauru for service
(c) signature of barrister and solicitor or pleader if party entering appearance
represented; otherwise signature of the party
*delete if not applicable.
N.B. Additional notes for the guidence of defendants seeking to enter an appearance are
given on the back. Please read them carefully. The form may have to be returned if any of the
information required is omitted or given incorrectly. The delay may result in judgment being
entered against the defendant. If judgment is entered, the defendant or his barrister and
solicitor or pleader may have to pay the costs of applying to set it aside.
(Back)
ADDITIONAL NOTES
1. The defendant must give his or her full name and a female defendant must add her
description, such as spinster, married woman, widow or divorced (a).
2. Where the defendant is a firm, the appearance must be entered by the individual partners
by name with the description "Partner in the firm of ……….".
3. Where the defendant is an individual trading in a name other than his own, the appearance
must be entered by him in his own name with the addition of the description "Trading as
…………..".
4. Where the defendant is corporation, or an infant or other person under disability the
appearance must be entered by a barrister and solicitor or pleader.
5. If the defendant has no defence or admits the plaintiff's claim, the entry of appearance will
delay judgment and may increase the costs payable by the defendant. Any proposal for the
payment of a debt by instalments or otherwise must be made direct to the plaintiff or his
barrister and solicitor or pleader and not to the Court.
6. Where the defendant is unable to give the number of the suit or any other information
required to identify it, the writ served on the defendant should be produced for the Court's
inspection when the appearance is entered.
7. Where the appearance is being entered by leave of the Court, a copy of the order granting
leave must accompany this form.
8. These notes deal only with the more usual cases. In cases of any difficulty it is advisable to
attend at the Court office for the purpose of entering an appearance.
(a) Where a defendant in an Admiralty action in rem is proceeded against as the
owner of the property, appearance may be entered by him as "The owner of the ship
…………..." or as may be, describing the res.
______
FORM NO. CIV/8
RULES OF COURT
(O.10, r.2)
MEMORANDUM OF APPEARANCE OF THIRD PARTY/ADDED DEFENDANT
(Heading as in Form No. CIV/11 or CIV/12 as appropriate)
Please enter an appearance for (a) ………………. who has been served with an order
dated the …………. day of 19….. making him a defendant to the suit*/to the third party
notice issued in this suit on the …………….. day of …………………. 19.….. by the
defendant (b) ………………. and served on the (a) ……………….. on the …………………
day of ……………….. 19….. .
Signed (c)
(a) name of added defendant or third party
(b) name of defendant who issued the third party note
(c) signature of barrister and solicitor or pleader if added defendant or third party is
represented; otherwise signature of added defendant or third party.
(Continuation as in Form No. CIV/7 with necessary modifications)
______
FORM NO. CIV/9
RULES OF COURT
(O.12, r.3)
NOTICE ON CONTERCLAIM AGAINST ADDED PARTY
To A.B.
If you intend to defend this counterclaim, you are required within 14 days, of service of this
defence and counterclaim on you, inclusive of the day of service, to enter an appearance in
this suit by lodging at the office of the Court at the Court House at Yaren a properly
completed memorandum in Form No. CIV/8; otherwise judgment may be given against you
without further notice. The memorandum may be lodged by personal delivery or sent by post.
It may be sent or delivered by you or by a barrister and solicitor or pleader on your behalf. It
must be accompanied by a copy of the memorandum; that copy will be stamped and returned
to you.
If you do not intend to be represented by a barrister and solicitor or pleader and you attend
with this counterclaim at the office of the Court at the Court House at Yaren on any day,
other than a Saturday, Sunday or public holiday, between 8.45 a.m. and 11.00 a.m. or
between 2.00 p.m. and 4.00 p.m. within 14 days of service of this counter-claim on you,
inclusive of the day of service, a member of the staff of the Court will assist you to prepare
the memorandum of appearance.
PLEASE NOTE THAT, IF NO APPEARANCE IS ENTERED BY YOU OR ON YOUR
BEHALF WITHIN THE TIME ALLOWED, I.E. 14 DAYS, JUDGMENT MAY BE GIVEN
AGAINST YOU WITHOUT ANY FURTHER NOTICE TO YOU.
______
FORM NO. CIV/10
RULES OF COURT
(O.12, r.4)
NOTICE OF COUNTERCLAIM
(Heading as in originating summons, Form No. CIV/3)
To A.B.
Take notice that the defendant in this suit O.D. counterclaims against the plaintiff A.B. as
follows –
(state nature of claim)
Dated the ……………. day of …………………, 19….. .
(Signed)
______
FORM NO. CIV/11
RULES OF COURT
(O.12, r.9)
SUMMONS TO ADDED PARTY
In the District Court
Civil Suit No.
Between A.B. plaintiff
and
C.D. and G.H. defendants
To G.H. of (a)
By order of this Court you have been added*/substituted as a defendant in this suit. The claim
made against you by the plaintiff A.B. is set out in the originating summons (Form No.
CIV/3) annexed hereto.
If you dispute the plaintiff's claim you are required to attend before this Court at the Court
House at Yaren on the ……………. day of …………….. 19..… at ……………. a.m./p.m.
PLEASE NOTE THAT, IF YOU DO NOT ATTEND AS REQUIRED, THE SUIT WILL BE
HEARD AND DETERMINED IN YOUR ABSENCE.
If you have any claim against the plaintiff which is not yet the subject of any suit in any
Court but which you wish to bring before a Court at this stage so that it is dealt with at the
same time as the plaintiff's claim against you, you must serve on the plaintiff a notice of your
claim in Form No. CIV/10 not later than the ………………… day of ……………. 19..… .(c)
The form can be obtained from the Court at the Court House at Yaren and the Clerk of the
Court will, on request, explain how it should be completed.
(a) address of defendant
(b) address of plaintiff
(c) two days before date of attendance shown in this summons
*delete whichever is not applicable
Issued this ……………… day of ………………… 19….. by the plaintiff */E.F., barrister
and solicitor*/pleader for the plaintiff.
If you do not dispute the claim you should pay to the Clerk of this Court the amount claimed
and $ ............, in respect of costs, a total of $ …………, on or before (c) ……………;
otherwise you will be liable to pay a larger amount in respect of costs.
______
FORM NO. CIV/12
RULES OF COURT
(O.13, r.1)
THIRD PARTY NOTICE
In the (Supreme Court
(District Court
Civil Suit No.
Between A. B. plaintiff
and
C.D. defendant
and
I.J. third party
*Issued pursuant to the order of ……………. dated the …………… day of ……………
19…… .
To I.J. of (a)
Take notice that this suit has been brought by the plaintiff against the defendant. In it the
plaintiff claims against the defendant (here state the nature of the plaintiff's claim) as appears
from the writ of summons a copy whereof is served herewith */ together with a copy of the
statement of claim.
The defendant claims against you (here state the nature of the claim against the third party, as
for instance to be indemnified against the plaintiff's claim and the costs of this suit or
contribution to the extent of one half of the plaintiff's claim or the following relief or remedy
namely …………………….) on the grounds that (state the grounds of the claim).
If you dispute the plaintiff's claim against the defendant, or the defendant's claim against you,
you are required within 14 days of service of this notice on you, inclusive of the day of
service, to enter an appearance in this suit by lodging at the office of this Court at the Court
House at Yaren a properly completed memorandum of appearance in Form No. CIV/8;
otherwise you will be deemed to admit the plaintiff's claim against the defendant and the
defendant's claim against you and your liability to (state the relief or remedy sought) and will
be bound by any judgment or decision given in the suit and the judgment may be enforced
against you in accordance with the law. The memorandum may be lodged by personal
delivery or be sent by post. It may be sent or delivered by you or by a barrister and solicitor
or pleader on your behalf. It must be accompanied by a copy of the memorandum; that copy
will be stamped and returned to you.
If you do not intend to be represented by a barrister and solicitor or pleader and you attend
with this notice at the office of this Court at the Court House at Yaren on any day, other than
a Saturday, Sunday or public holiday, between 8.45 a.m. and 11.00 a.m. or between 2.00 p.m.
and 4.00 p.m. within 14 days of service of this notice on you, inclusive of the day of service,
a member of the staff of this Court will assist you to prepare the memorandum of appearance.
PLEASE NOTE THAT, IF NO APPEARANCE IS ENTERED BY YOU OR ON YOUR
BEHALF WITHIN THE TIME ALLOWED, I.E. 14 DAYS, JUDGMENT MAY BE GIVEN
AGAINST YOU WITHOUT ANY FURTHER NOTICE TO YOU.
Dated the …………………… day of ………………….. 19..… .
(signed)
(a) address of third party
* delete if not applicable
______
FORM NO. CIV/13
RULES OF COURT
(O.13. r.1)
THIRD PARTY NOTICE
(Heading as in Form No. CIV/12)
Issued pursuant to the order of ………………… dated the ……………… day of
……………. 19..… .
To I. J. of (a)
Take notice that this suit has been brought by the plaintiff against the defendant. In it the
plaintiff claims against the defendant (here state the nature of the plaintiff's claim) as appears
from the writ of summons a copy whereof is served herewith*/together with a copy of the
statement of claim.
The defendant requires that the following question or issue, viz. (here state the question or
issue required to be determined) should be determined not only as between the plaintiff and
the defendant but also as between either or both of them and yourself.
If you wish to be heard on the said question or issue or to dispute the defendant's liability to
the plaintiff or your liability to the defendant, you are required within 14 days of service of
this notice on you, inclusive of the day of service, to enter an appearance in this suit by
lodging at the office of this Court at the Court House at Yaren a properly completed
memorandum of appearance in Form No. CIV/8; otherwise you will be bound by any
judgment or decision given in the suit in so far as it is relevant to the said question or issue,
and the judgment may be enforced against you in accordance with the law. The memorandum
may be lodged by personal delivery or sent by post. It may be sent or delivered by, you or by
a barrister and solicitor or pleader on your behalf. It must be accompanied by a copy of the
memorandum; that copy will be stamped and returned to you.
If you do not intend to be represented by a barrister and solicitor or pleader and you attend
with this notice at the office of this Court at the Court House at Yaren on any day, other than
Saturday, Sunday or public holiday, between 8.45 a.m. and 11.00 a.m. or between 2.00 p.m.
and 4.00 p.m. within 14 days of the service of this notice on you, inclusive of the day of
service, a member of the staff of this Court will assist you to prepare the memorandum of
appearance.
PLEASE NOTE THAT, IF NO APPEARANCE IS ENTERED BY YOU OR ON YOUR
BEHALF WITHIN THE TIME ALLOWED, I.E. 14 DAYS, JUDGEMENT MAY BE
GIVEN AGAINST YOU WITHOUT ANY FURTHER NOTICE TO YOU.
Dated the …………………. day of ………………… 19….. .
(Signed)
(a) address of third party
* delete if not applicable
______
FORM NO. CIV/14
RULES OF COURT
(O.13, r.7)
NOTICE TO A THIRD PARTY IN A SUIT UNDER SECTION 14
In the District Court
Civil Suit No.
Between A.B. plaintiff
and
C.D. defendant
and
I.J. third party
Issued pursuant to the order of the District Court made on the ……………… day of
………………. 19…... .
To I.J. of (a)
Take notice that this suit has been brought by the plaintiff against the defendant. In it the
plaintiff claims against the defendant (here state the nature of the plaintiff's claim) as appears
from the originating summons a copy whereof is served herewith.
If you dispute the defendant's liability to the plaintiff or your liability to the defendant, you
are hereby required to attend before the District Court at the Court House at Yaren on the
……………. day of ………………... 19…… at …………. a.m./p.m. for the hearing of the
suit.
PLEASE NOTE THAT, IF YOU DO NOT ATTEND AS REQUIRED, THE SUIT WILL BE
HEARD AND YOUR LIABILITY DETERMINED IN YOUR ABSENCE.
If you do not dispute the claim you should pay to the Clerk of this Court the amount claimed
and $ ................ in respect of costs, a total of $ ................., on or before (b) ………..…;
otherwise you will be liable to pay a larger amount in respect of costs.
If you have any claim against the plaintiff which is not yet the subject of any suit in any
Court but which you wish to bring before a Court at this stage so that it is dealt with at the
same time as the plaintiff's claim against you, you must serve on the plaintiff a notice of your
claim in Form No. CIV/10 not later than the …………………. day of ……………… 19…..
(b). The form can be obtained from this Court at the Court House at Yaren and the Clerk of
the Court will, on request, explain how it should be completed.
Dated the ………………. day of …………………. 19……
(Signed)
(a) address of third party
(b) two days before date for attendance shown in this summons
______
FORM NO. CIV/15
RULES OF COURT
(O.14, r.2)
WRIT OF SUMMONS IN SUIT OF INTERPLEADER
In the (Supreme Court
(District Court
Civil Suit No.
In the matter of an interpleader application by K.L.
To M.N. of (a)
and
O P.of (b)
The applicant K.L. is in possession of (state property in dispute) which is claimed by you
*and O.P.*/M.N.: *he seized the said property in execution of process issued at the instance
of O.P*/ yourself against the property of Q.R.; he claims no interest in the said property other
than to the extent of his proper charges and costs;
If you wish to be heard in this suit, you are required within 14 days of service of this writ on
you, inclusive of the day of service, to enter an appearance in this suit by lodging at the office
of this Court at the Court House at Yaren a properly completed memorandum of appearance.
The memorandum may be lodged by personal delivery or sent by post. It may be sent or
delivered by you or by a barrister and solicitor or pleader on your behalf. It must be
accompanied by a copy of the memorandum; that copy will be stamped and returned to you.
If you do not intend to be represented by a barrister and solicitor or pleader and you attend
with this writ on you at the office of this Court at the Court House at Yaren on any day, other
than a Saturday, Sunday or public holiday, between 8.45 a.m. and 11.00 a.m. or between 2.00
p.m. and 4.00 p.m. within 14 days of service of this writ on you, inclusive of the day of
service, a member of the staff of this Court will assist you to prepare the memorandum of
appearance.
PLEASE NOTE THAT, IF NO APPEARANCE IS ENTERED BY YOU OR ON YOUR
BEHALF WITHIN THE TIME ALLOWED, I.E.14 DAYS, THIS SUIT MAY BE HEARD
AND DECIDED WITHOUT ANY FURTHER NOTICE TO YOU.
Issued this ……………….. day of …………………… 19…... by the applicant K.L. */ E.F.
barrister and solicitor */pleader for the applicant.
(a) address of first claimant
(b) address of second claimant
* delete whichever is not applicable
______
FORM NO. CIV/16
RULES OF COURT
(O.19, r.3)
NOTICE OF ACCEPTANCE OF MONEY PAID INTO COURT
(Heading as in suit)
Take notice that the plaintiff accepts the sum of $ ................... paid in by the defendant C.D.
in satisfaction of the cause(s) of action in respect of which it was paid in and in respect of
which the plaintiff claims */against that defendant */and abandons the other causes of action
in respect of which he claims in this suit.
Dated the …………….. day of ……………… 19….. .
(Signed)
* delete if not applicable
_____
FORM NO. CIV/17
RULES OF COURT
(0.21, r.3)
LIST OF DOCUMENTS
(Heading as in suit)
The following is a list of the documents relating to the matters in question in this suit which
are or have been in the possession, custody or power of the abovenamed plaintiff
A.B.*/defendant C.D. and which is served in compliance with the order herein dated the
……………. day of ……………… 19….. .
1. The plaintiff*/defendant has in his possession, custody or power the documents relating to
the matters in question in this suit enumerated in Schedule 1 hereto.
2. The plaintiff*/ defendant objects to produce the documents enumerated in Part 2 of the said
Schedule 1 on the ground that (stating the ground of objection).
3. The plaintiff*/ defendant has had, but has not now, in his possession, custody or power the
documents relating to the matters in question in this suit enumerated in Schedule 2 hereto.
4. Of the documents in the said Schedule 2, those numbered ……………………… in that
schedule were last in the plaintiff's*/ defendant's possession, custody or power on (stating
when) and the remainder on (stating when).
(Here state what has become of the said documents and in whose possession they now are.)
5. Neither the plaintiff*/defendant, nor his barrister and solicitor */pleader nor any other
person on his behalf, has now, or ever had, in his possession, custody or power any document
of any description whatever relating to any matter in question in this suit, other than the
documents enumerated in Schedules 1 and 2 hereto.
SCHEDULE 1
PART 1
(Here enumerate in a convenient order the documents (or bundles of documents, if of the
same, nature, such as invoices) in the possession, custody or power of the party in question
which he does not object to produce, with a short description of each document or bundle
sufficient to identify it.)
PART 2
(Here enumerate as aforesaid the documents in the possession custody or power of the party
in question which he objects to produce.)
SCHEDULE 2
(Here enumerate as aforesaid the documents which have been, but at the date of service of the
list are not, in the possession, custody or power of the party in question).
Dated the …………….. day of ……………….. 19….. .
Notice to inspect
Take notice that the documents in the above list, other than those listed in Part 2 of Schedule
1 and in Schedule 2, may be inspected at the office of the barrister and solicitor */ pleader of
the abovenamed plaintiff */defendant (insert address) (or as may be) on the ………………..
day of ………………….. 19……, between the hours of …………… and ……….. .
(Signed)
To the defendant C.D.*/the plaintiff A.B. and his barrister and solicitor*/pleader.
Served the …………… day of …………………. 19….., by ………………. of ……………..
for plaintiff*/ defendant.
* delete whichever is inapplicable
______
FORM NO. CIV/18
RULES OF COURT
(O.21, r.3)
AFFIDAVIT ON DISCOVERY
(Heading as in suit)
I, the above-named plaintiff A.B.*/defendant C.D., make oath and say as follows:-
1. The statements made by me in paragraphs 1, 3 and 4 of the list of document now produced
and shown to me marked …………………. are true.
2. The statements of fact made by me in paragraph 2 of the said list are true.
3. The statements made by me in paragraph 5 of the said list are true to the best of my
knowledge, information and belief.
Sworn, etc.
This affidavit is filed on behalf of the plaintiff*/defendant.
* delete whichever is not applicable
______
FORM NO. CIV/19
RULES OF COURT
(O.29, r.2)
REQUEST FOR HEARING DATE
(Heading as in suit)
The pleadings in this suit having closed on the ………………… day of ………………….
19……, *and the Court having given a direction dated the …………..…… day of ………..
19….. that (state nature of direction relating to setting-down of suit), I hereby request that a
hearing date be assigned forthwith.
Dated the …………….. day of ……………………. 19…… .
Signed (a)
(a) signature of the barrister and solicitor or pleader of the party making the request, or of the
party personally if not represented.
*delete if not applicable.
______
FORM NO. CIV/20
RULES OF COURT
(O.29, r.6)
NOTICE OF HEARING DATE
(Heading as in suit)
To all parties
Take notice that this suit will be heard by the Court at the Court House at Yaren on the
……………………….. day of ………………… 19….. at ………….. a.m./ p.m. or as soon
thereafter as he business of the Court permits.
Dated the ……………………. day of ……………… 19.…. .
Registrar*/Clerk of the Court.
* delete whichever is, no, applicable.
_______
FORM NO. CIV/21
RULES OF COURT
(O.32, r.14)
WITNESS SUMMONS
(Heading as in suit)
To S.T. of (a)
You are hereby commanded in the name of the Republic to attend in person before this Court
at the Court House at Yaren at …………….. a.m. +/ p.m. on the ………………… day of
………………….. 19…..., and to continue thereafter so to attend from day to day until
released by this Court from such obligation, to give evidence of all that you know in respect
of this suit *and to bring with you and to produce at the said time and place (specify
documents, etc. to be brought).
This summons is issued at the instance of (b) ………………………………………………….
Dated the ………………….. day of ………….. 19….. .
Register+/Clerk of the Court.
(a) address of witness
(b) state name of party
*delete if not applicable
+delete whichever is not applicable
______
FORM NO.CIV/22
RULES OF COURT
(O.33, r.1)
COMMISSION TO TAKE A DEPOSITION
(Heading as in suit)
To the Registrar (or as the case may be)
You are hereby commissioned by this Court to examine a witness S.T. on behalf of the
plaintiff* /defendant in this suit viva voce on oath or affirmation at such place and time as
you may notify in writing to the parties, +such notice being given not less than …………….
days before such date; and it is ordered that the depositions taken at the examination be filed
in the office of this Court, and that office copies thereof may be read and given in evidence
on the trial of this suit, saving all just exceptions, without any further proof of the absence of
the said witness than the affidavit of the barrister and solicitor, pleader or agent of the party
using the same, as to his belief, and that the costs of this application +and of the examination
be costs in the cause (or as may be).
Dated the ……………… day of ………………. 19…... .
Judge*/ Resident Magistrate
*delete whichever is not applicable
+ delete if not applicable
______
FORM NO. CIV/24
RULES OF COURT
(O.33, r 2)
ORDER FOR LETTER OF REQUEST
(Heading as in suit)
It is ordered that a letter of request do issue directed to the proper judicial authority for the
examination of the following witnesses, namely:
S.T. of …………………………..
U.V. of ………………………….
And it is ordered that the depositions taken pursuant thereto when received be filed in the
office of this Court and that office copies thereof may be read and given in evidence on the
trial of this suit, saving all just exceptions, without any further proof of the absence of the
said witnesses than the affidavit of the barrister and solicitor, pleader or agent of the party
using the same as to his belief.
And it ordered that *the trial of this suit be stayed until the said depositions have been filed
and that the costs of and incidental to the application for this order and the said letter of
request and examination be costs in the cause or as ordered.
Dated the ……………………. day of …………………. 19…... .
Judge
*delete if not applicable
______
FORM NO.CIV/24
RULES OF COURT
(O.33, r.2)
COMMISSION TO PERSON OUTSIDE NAURU
(Heading as in suit)
The consular representative of the Republic at ………………. */Mr. ...............….. of
.................. is hereby commissioned by this Court to examine a witness S.T. on behalf of the
plaintiff*/defendant in this suit viva voce on oath or afformation at (place) ...................... in
..................... (country). The Commissioner shall be at liberty to invite the attendance of the
witnesses and the production of documents, but shall not exercise any compulsory powers.
Otherwise such examination shall be taken in accordance with the Nauruan procedure. The
plaintiff's*/defendant's barrister and solicitor*/pleader shall give to the defendant's*/plaintiff's
barrister and solicitor*/pleader ......................... days' notice in writing of the date on which
they propose to send out this order to the commissioner for execution, and that
............................ days after the service of such notice the barristers and solicitors*/pleaders
for the plaintiff and defendant respectively do exchange the names of their agents at (place of
examination) to whom notice relating to the examination of the said witness may be sent.
And that ...................... days, exclusive of Sunday, before the examination of any witness
hereunder notice of such examination shall be given by the agent of the party on whose
behalf such witness is to be examined to the agent of the other party, unless such notice be
dispensed with. And that the depositions when taken, together with any documents referred to
therein, or certified copies of such documents, or of extracts therefrom, be sent by the
commissioner, under seal, to the Registrar of the Supreme Court at the Court House at Yaren
on or before the ............................. day of ................................... next, or such further or other
day as may be ordered, there to be filed in the proper office. And that either party be at liberty
to read and give such depositions in evidence on the trial of this suit, saving all just
exceptions. And that the trial of this suit be stayed until the filing of such depositions. And
that the costs of and incidental to the application for this order and such examination be costs
in the cause.
Dated the ......................... day of ...................... 19....... .
*delete whichever is not applicable.
______
FORM NO. CIV/25
RULES OF COURT
(O.33, r.3)
LETTER OF REQUEST
To the competent judicial authority of ………………….………… in the ………………... of
…………………………………..
Whereas a suit is now pending in the Supreme Court of Nauru, in which ………………. is
plaintiff and .......................... is defendant and in which ......................... the plaintiff claims
…………………. .
And whereas it has been represented to the said Court that it is necessary for the purpose of
justice and for the due determination of the matters in dispute between the parties that the
following persons should be examined as witnesses upon oath touching such matters, namely
............................ of ................................... and .................................. of ……………………
and it appears that such witnesses are resident within your jurisdiction.
Now I ................................. the Registrar of the Supreme Court of Nauru hereby request that
for the reasons aforesaid and for the assistance of the said Court you will be pleased to
summon the said witnesses, and such other witnesses as the agents of the said plaintiff and
defendant shall humbly appoint before you, or such other person as according to your
procedure is competent to take the examination of witnesses, and that you will cause such
witnesses to be examined viva voce*/upon the interrogatories which accompany this letter of
request touching the said matters in question in the presence of the agents of the plaintiff and
defendant or such of them as shall, on due notice given, attend the examination.
And I further request that you will permit the agents of both the plaintiff and the defendant or
such of them as shall be present to examine *upon interrogatories and viva voce upon the
subject-matter thereof or arising out of the answers thereto such witnesses as may, after due
notice in writing, be produced on their behalf, and the other party to cross-examine the said
witnesses *upon cross-interrogatories and viva voce and the party producing the witness for
examination to re-examine him viva voce.
And I further request that you will be pleased to cause the evidence of the said witnesses*/the
answers of the said witnesses and all additional viva voce questions, whether on examination,
cross-examination or re-examination to be reduced into writing and all books, letters, papers
and documents produced on such examination to be duly marked for identification, and that
you will be further pleased to authenticate such examination by the seal of your tribunal or in
such other way as is in accordance with your procedure and to return it together with *the
interrogatories and cross-interrogatories and a notice of the charges and expenses payable in
respect of the execution of this request through the consular representative of Nauru from
whom the same was received */the Secretary for Foreign Affairs of Nauru for transmission to
the Supreme Court.
And I further request that you will cause me, or the agents of the parties if appointed, to be
informed of the date and place where the examination is to take place.
Dated the ............................ day of .................. 19....... .
Registrar
*delete if not applicable.
______
FORM NO.CIV/26
RULES OR COURT
(O.35, r.1)
DECREE
(Title as in suit)
It is decreed in this suit that the plaintiff A.E do recover from the defendant C.D. the sum of
$................. together, with $................... for costs and the said defendant C.D. is hereby
ordered to pay the sum of $.................. forthwith.
Dated the .............. day of ......................... 19....... .
Registrar*/Clerk of the Court
* delete whichever is not applicable.
______
FORM NO.CIV/27
RULES OF COURT
(O.35, r.2)
DEFAULT JUDGEMENT
(Heading as in suit)
No appearance having been entered*/ no defence* /no defence to the counterclaim* having
been served by the defendant*/plaintiff herein, it is this day adjudged that the
defendant*/plaintiff pay the plaintiff */defendant $ .................. and $ ............... costs*/pay the
plaintiff*/defendant damages to be assessed*/ (as may be appropriate to the nature of the of
the claim) and costs.
Dated the ......................... day of ......................... 19....... .
*delete whichever is not applicable.
______
FORM NO.CIV/28
RULES OF COURT
(O.36, r.5)
WRIT OF ATTACHMENT OR SEIZURE AND SALE
(Heading as in suit)
To the Director of Police
Whereas in the abovenamed suit it was on the ................. day of ............... 19 ........
adjudged*/ ordered that the defendant C.D. do pay the plaintiff A.B. $ ….............. and $
................ costs*/ costs to be taxed, which costs have been taxed and allowed at $ ................
as appears by the certificate of the taxing officer dated the ..................... day of
.......................... 19....... .
You are hereby required of the goods, chattels and other property of C.D. in Nauru authorised
by law to be attached*/ seized in execution to cause to be made the sums of $ ............... and $
............. for costs of execution and also interest on $ ................... at the rate of $8 per centum
per annum from the .................. day of ....................... 19 ........ until payment together with
your costs of levying and all other legal, incidental expenses and immediately after execution
of this writ to pay into the registry of this Court in pursuance of the said judgment*/ order the
amount levied in respect of the said sums and interest.
And you are also hereby required to indorse on this writ immediately after execution thereof
a statement of the manner in which you have executed it and send a copy of the statement to
A.B.
Dated the ................... day of ........................ 19....... .
Register*/ Resident Magistrate
This writ was issued on the application of ...................... of ......................., barrister and
solicitor* /pleader for ....................*/ this writ was issued by A.B. the plaintiff in person who
resides at .............................................................................................................................. .
The defendant resides (or as the case may be) at ........................................................ in Nauru.
* delete whichever is not applicable.
______
FORM NO.CIV/29
RULES OF COURT
(O.36, r.5)
WRIT OF DELIVERY
(Heading as in suit)
To the Director of Police
Whereas in the abovenamed suit it was on the ........................... day of ............................... 19
....... adjudged*/ ordered that the defendant C.D. do deliver to the plaintiff A.B. the following
goods, namely (describe the goods delivery of which has been adjudged or ordered) or to pay
him $................... being the assessed value of the said goods,*/ and $.............. damages and
$............. costs*/costs to be taxed, which costs have been taxed and allowed at $.............. as
appears by the certificate of the taxing officer dated the ....................... day of ..................
19...... .
You are hereby required to cause the said goods to be delivered to A.B. and, if possession of
the said goods cannot be obtained by you, to cause to be made of the goods, chattels and
other property of C.D. in Nauru authorised by law to be seized in execution $.............. the
assessed value of the said goods and pay it into the registry of this Court.
And you are also hereby required of the said property of C.D. in Nauru to cause to be made
the sums of $............... for *damages and costs and $............... for costs of execution and also
interest on $................. at the rate of $8 per cent, per annum from the .................. day of
……………… 19....... until payment together with your costs of levying and all other legal
incidental expenses and that immediately after execution of this writ you pay into the registry
of this Court the amount levied in respect of the said sums and interest.
And you are also hereby required to indorse on this writ immediately after execution thereof
a statement of the manner in which you have executed it and send a copy of the statement to
A.B.
Dated the .................. day of .................. 19...... .
Register*/Resident Magistrate
This writ was issued on the application of .................... of ....................*/barrister and
solicitor*/pleader for .........................*/this writ was issued by A.B, the plaintiff in person
who resides at ........................................................... .
The defendant resides (or as the case may be) at ................................................... in Nauru.
*delete whichever is not applicable
______
FORM NO.CIV/30
RULES OF COURT
(O.36, r.5)
SUMMONS TO JUDGMENT-DEBTOR TO ATTEND AND BE EXAMINED
(Heading as in suit)
To C.D. of (a)
Whereas in the abovenamed suit it was adjudged*/ ordered that you do pay to the plaintiff
A.B. $................ and $.................... for costs and whereas the said judgment*/ order has
not been satisfied and $.............. remains unpaid;
You are hereby commanded to attend before this Court at the Court House at Yaren on the
............. day of ................. 19…... at a.m.*/p.m., and to remain in such attendance until your
departure is authorised by the Court, and to be examined on oath or affirmation as to your
property and your means of satisfying and discharging the said judgment*/ order.
PLEASE NOTE THAT, IF YOU FAIL TO ATTEND AND BE EXAMINED AS
REQUIRED BY THIS SUMMONS, THE COURT MAY REGARD SUCH FAILURE AS
EVIDENCE THAT YOU HAVE SUFFICIENT MEANS TO SATISFY AND DISCHARGE
THE SAID JUDGMENT */ORDER AND MAY ORDER THAT THE SAID JUDGMENT*/
ORDER BE ENFORCED BY YOUR ARREST AND DETENTION IN PRISON.
Dated the ............. day of .................. 19....... .
Registrar*/Resident Magistrate
(a) address of judgment-debtor
* delete whichever is not applicable.
______
FORM NO.CIV/31
RULES OF COURT
(O.36, r.5)
WARRANT OF ARREST OF A JUDGMENT-DEBTOR
(Heading as in suit)
To all police officer
Whereas in the abovenamed suit it was adjudged*/ ordered that the defendant C.D. should
pay to the plaintiff A.B. $ ................ and $ ............... for costs and whereas the said
judgement*/ order has not been satisfied and $ ……............ remains unpaid;
And whereas the decree-holder has given evidence on oath*/affirmation that the judgment-
debtor C.D. is about to leave Nauru and that the enforcement of the said judgment*/ order is
likely to be frustrated thereby;
You are hereby required to arrest the said judgment-debtor C.D. and to bring him before this
Court at the Court House at Yaren to be examined as to his property and his means satisfying
and discharging the judgment*/ order.
Dated the ............... day of ..................... 19......
Judge*/Register*/Resident Magistrate
The judgment-debtor C.D. lives at .............................................................................................
* delete whichever is not applicable.
______
FORM NO.CIV/32
RULES OF COURT
(O.36, r.5)
WARRANT FOR THE ARREST AND DETENTION OF A JUDGMENT-DEBTOR
(Heading as in suit)
To all police officers and to the Superintendent, Nauru Prison
Whereas (recital as first recital in Form No. CIV/31):
And whereas the Court has found that the judgment-debtor .C.D.-
*has*/has had sufficient means to satisfy and discharge the judgment */order and
refuses or neglects*/ has refused or neglected to satisfy and discharge it;
*is about to leave Nauru without satisfying and discharging the judgment* order and
the enforcement of the judgment*/ order is likely to be frustrated if he does so;
*obtained credit or contracted under false pretences, by means of fraud or by breach
of trust the liability in respect of which the judgment has been given against him;
*has made, or caused to be made, a gift, delivery or transfer of certain property */has
charged, removed or concealed certain property with intent to defraud one or more of
his creditors;
You, the said police officers, are hereby required forthwith to arrest the said judgment-debtor
C.D. and to convey him without delay to the Nauru Prison and there to deliver him to the
Superintendent of the Nauru Prison for safe keeping;
And you, the said Superintendent of the Nauru Prison, are hereby required to detain the said
judgment-debtor C.D. in the Nauru Prison for a period of ..................................................:
Provided that you are to release the said C.D. from the prison before the expiration of that
period –
(a) the amount of $ ................. is paid to you by him or on his behalf for the
satisfaction and discharge of the judgment */order;
(b) ordered to do so by a judge or the Registrar of this Court*/ the resident magistrate;
or
(c) the decree-holder fails to pay the subsistance allowance payable in respect of the
detention of the said C.D.
Dated the ...................... day of ........................ 19....... .
Registrar*/ Resident Magistrate
The judgment-debtor C.D. lives at ............................................................................................ .
*delete whichever is not required
______
FORM NO. CIV/33
RULES OF COURT
(O.36, r.5)
WRIT FOR ACT ORDERED BY COURT TO BE DONE BY AN AUTHORISED
PERSON
(Heading as in suit)
To ...............................................
Whereas in the abovenamed suit it was ordered that (state order made) .......................;
And whereas the said order has not been complied with;
You are hereby authorised and required to (state act to be done) for and on behalf of the
person(s) named in said order and for the said purpose you shall have and are hereby
authorised to exercise all the capacity and powers of the said persons in that regard.
Dated the ........................... day of .............................. 19........ .
Judge*/ Registrar*/ Resident Magistrate
*delete whichever is not applicable.
______
FORM NO. CIV/34
RULES OF COURT
(O.36, r.10)
NOTICE TO SHOW CAUSE WHY SALARY OR WAGES SHOULD NOT BE
ATTACHED
(Heading as in suit)
To C.D. of (a)
Whereas in the abovenamed suit (as in first recital in Form No. CIV/30);
And whereas an application has been made to the Court for an order attaching a part of your
salary in the hands of your employers and for its payment into the Court for the benefit of the
decree-holder until the judgment*/ order is satisfied;
And whereas leave has been granted by the Court for the issue of this notice:
TAKE NOTICE that, if you wish to show cause why an order for the attachment of your
salary and its payment into Court should not be made or to be heard as to the amount which
should be ordered to be attached, you must attend before a judge*/ the Registrar */ the
resident magistrate in his chambers at the Court House at Yaren on the ....................... day of
................................ 19...... at ............. a.m./ p.m.
PLEASE NOTE THAT, IF YOU DO NOT ATTEND AT THE TIME AND PLACE
STATED IN THIS NOTICE, AN ORDER MAY BE MADE FOR PART OF YOUR
SALARY OR WAGES TO BE ATTACHED, I.E. NOT PAID TO YOU, AND PAID INTO
COURT FOR THE BENEFIT OF THE DECREE-HOLDER WITHOUT ANY FURTHER
NOTICE TO YOU OR YOUR BEING HEARD IN THE MATTER.
*1t is alleged that you are employed by ..............................................................................
*and that your salary or wages amount to ........................... per ............ . PLEASE NOTE
that, if you do not attend at the time and place stated in this notice, YOU WILL BE TAKEN
TO ADMIT THAT THESE PARTICULARS ARE CORRECT.
This notice is issued at the instance of the decree-holder A.B.
Dated the .................. day of ......................... 19....... .
Registrar*/ Clerk of the Court
*delete where not applicable.
______
FORM NO. CIV/35
RULES OF COURT
(O.36, r.10)
NOTICE TO EMPLOYER OF ATTACHMENT OF SALARY OR WAGES
(Heading as in suit)
TO:
This Court has ordered that the salary*/ wages of your employee C.D. be attached and paid
into court to satisfy the amount of the judgment debt not yet satisfied. That amount, including
all costs to date, is $…......... .
You are hereby required to withhold from the salary*/ wages of C.D. on each and every pay
day subsequent to the first pay day following the service of this notice on you an amount
calculated at the rate of $............ per week*/ month and to pay that amount forthwith to the
Registrar*/ Clerk of the Court of the Supreme Court*/ District Court, until the amount of
$............. has been so paid.
PLEASE NOTE THAT, IF YOU FAIL TO COMPLY WITH THE REOUIREMENTS OF
THIS NOTICE, YOU WILL BE PERSONALLY LIABLE TO THE DECREE-HOLDER
FOR ANY AMOUNT NOT WITHHELD AND PAID INTO COURT.
If C.D. leaves you employment before the full amount of the unsatisfied judgment debt has
been paid into court, you must immediately notify the Registrar*/ Clerk of the Court in
writing.
This notice was issued at the instance of the decree-holder, A.B.
Dated the ................... day of ............................ 19...... .
Registrar*/ Resident Magistrate
*deleted whichever is not applicable.
______
FORM NO. CIV/36
RULES OF COURT
(O.36, r.11)
GARNISHEE ORDER NISI
(Heading as in suit)
To W.X. and C.D.
Whereas it is alleged that W.X. (herein called "the garnishee") is indebted to the judgment-
debtor C.D. in the abovenamed suit;
IT IS ORDERED by the Court that all debts due and accruing due from the garnishee to the
said C.D. are attached to answer a judgment recovered*/ order made in this Court against the
said C.D. for $ ............ and $ ............... costs, together with the costs of the proceedings for
the attachment of the said debts, that is to say that you are hereby prohibited, for so long as
this order remains undischarged, from paying the said debts to the said C.D. or to any other
person on his behalf;
AND IT IS ORDERED that you attend before a judge*/ the resident magistrate in chambers
at the Court House at Yaren on the ........................ day of ........................... 19........ at
................ a.m.*/ p.m. on an application by the decree-holder for an order that the garnishee
should pay into the registry of this Court for payment to him all debts due and accruing due
from the said garnishee to the said C.D., or so much thereof as may be sufficient to satisfy the
judgment*/ order and the costs of the proceedings for the attachment of said debts.
Registrar*/ Clerk of the Court
* delete if not applicable.
_____
FORM NO. CIV/37
RULES OF COURT
(O.38, r.3)
WRIT OF SUMMONS IN SUIT FOR AN ORDER OF MANDAMUS, ETC.
In the Supreme Court
Civil Suit No.
In the matter of an application for an order of mandamus (other prerogative order) by A.B
directed to C.D.
To C.D. of (a) .......................................................................................................................
A.B. of (b) ............................, having been granted leave on the ....................... day of
........................ 19...... to commence these proceedings, seeks that an order of mandamus (or
other prerogative order) be made directing that (state terms of order sought).
The grounds on which the order is sought are (state the grounds).
If you wish to be heard by the Court in this matter, you are required within 8 days of the
service of this writ on you, inclusive of the day of service, to enter an appearance in this suit
by lodging at the office of this Court at the Court House at Yaren a properly completed
memorandum of appearance in Form No. CIV/7. The memorandum may be lodged by
personal delivery or be sent by post. It may be sent or delivered by you or by a barrister and
solicitor or pleader on your behalf. It must be accompanied by a copy of the memorandum;
that copy will be stamped and returned to you.
Issued this ......................... day of ...................... 19..... by the plaintiff*/ E.F., barrister and
solicitor*/ pleader for the plaintiff.
The plaintiff's address for service in this suit is (c)
(a) address of defendant
(b) address of plaintiff
(c) address within Nauru
*delete whichever is not applicable.
______
FORM NO. CIV/38
RULES OF COURT
(O.40, r.2)
NOTICE OF TAXATION OF COSTS
(Heading as in suit)
TO C.D.
Take notice that an appointment has been given for the plaintiff's*/ defendant's bill of cost
annexed hereto to be taxed by the Registrar*/ resident magistrate in his chambers at the Court
House at Yaren on the .................... day of ................... 19...... at .......... a.m.*/ p.m. If you
wish to dispute any item in the bill or the amount thereof you must attend at that time and
place. Otherwise the amount of the plaintiff's */defendant's costs may be decided without
your being heard in the matter.
Dated the ................... day of ........................ 19....... .
(Signed) (a)
(a) signature of the barrister and solicitor or pleader of the party whose costs are to be taxed
*delete whichever is not applicable
______
FORM NO. CIV/39
RULES OF COURT
(O.48, r.3)
WRIT OF SUMMONS COMMENCING AN ADMIRALTY ACTION IN REM
In the Supreme Court
Admiralty Suit No.
Admiralty action in rem between:
* The ship "X" (or as may be, describing the res)
* The owners of the ship "Y" (or as may be) Plaintiffs
and
The owners of the ship "X" (or as may be, describing the res) Defendants
To the owners of and other persons interested in the ship ............................................. of the
port of ........................... */cargo, etc., (or as may be)
You are required within 14 days after the service of this writ, inclusive of the day of service,
to cause an appearance to be entered for you in a suit by ...............................; and take notice
that in default of your so doing the plaintiffs may proceed therein, and judgment may be
given in your absence, and if the res described in this writ is then under arrest of the Court it
may be sold by order of the Court.
Note: - This writ may not be served more than 12 calendar months after the above date unless
renewed by order of the Court.
DIRECTIONS FOR ENTERING APPEARANCE
The defendants may enter an appearance in person or by a barrister and solicitor or pleader
either (1) by handing in the appropriate forms, duly completed, at the office of the Supreme
Court at the Court House at Yaren or (2) by sending them to that office by post.
Indorsements to be made on writ before issue
Indorsement of claim
The plaintiffs' claim is for ...................................................................................
(if the plaintiffs sue, or the defendants are sued, in a representative capacity, this must be
stated in the indorsement of claim.)
Indorsement as to barrister and solicitor or pleader and address
This writ was issued this ............................ day of .................. 19....... by ................... of
.................... barrister and solicitor or pleader for the said plaintiffs whose address is
................................................... .
*/This writ was issued this ..................... day of ..................... 19...... by the said plaintiffs
who reside at ...................... and (if the plaintiffs do not reside within the jurisdiction) whose
address for service is ........................................................... .
Indorsement as to service
This writ was served by me at ........................... on.......................... On the day of ...................
19...... by (stating manner of service).
(Signed)
(Address)
* delete where not applicable.
______
FORM NO. CIV/40
RULES OF COURT
(O.48, r.5)
WARRANT OF ARREST IN ADMIRALTY ACTION IN REM
(Heading as in suit)
To the Director of Police
You are hereby required to arrest the ship ..................... of the port of ..........................* and
the cargo now or lately laden therein, together with the freight due for the transportation
thereof, */and the freight due for the transportation of the cargo now or lately laden therein,
and to keep the same under safe arrest until you shall receive further orders from this Court.
The plaintiffs' claim is for (copy from the writ)
Dated the ............................ day of ...................... 19....... .
Registrar
Taken out by ...................... barrister and solicitor*/ pleader for the plaintiff.
Indorsement by Director of Police as to service
* delete where not applicable.
______
FORM NO. CIV/41
RULES OF COURT
(O.48, r.5)
REQUEST FOR ISSUE OF WARRANT
(Heading as in suit)
I .................................... of ..................................... barrister and solicitor*/ pleader for the
plaintiffs request a warrant to arrest (description of property, giving name if a ship).
Dated the ..................... day of ...................................... 19...... .
(Signed)
* delete whichever is not applicable.
______
FORM NO. CIV/42
RULES OF COURT
(O.48, r.6)
REQUEST FOR CAVEAT AGAINST ARREST
(Description of property, giving name if a ship)
I .............................. of ....................... barrister and solicitor*/ pleader for .......................... of
...................... request a caveat against the arrest of (description of property, giving name if a
ship) and hereby undertake to enter an appearance in any suit that may be begun in the
Supreme Court against the said .................. and, within 3 days after receiving notice that such
a suit has been begun to give bail in the suit in a sum not exceeding $ ............... or to pay that
sum into court. We consent that the writ of summons and any other document in the suit may
be left for us at ............................................................................................ .
Dated the ......................... day of ............................. 19....... .
(Signed)
* delete; whichever is not applicable
______
FORM NO. CIV/43
RULES OF COURT
(O.48, r.8)
REQUEST FOR SERVICE OF WRIT OF SUMMONS BY DIRECTOR OF POLICE
(Heading as in suit)
I .................................. of .................................... barrister and solicitor*/ pleader for the
plaintiffs request that the writ of summons left herewith be duly served on ...................... by
the Director of Police.
Dated the ................... day of ............................. 19...... .
(Signed)
* delete whichever is not applicable.
_____
FORM NO. CIV/44
RULES OF COURT
(O.48, r.13)
RELEASE OF ARRESTED PROPERTY
(Heading as in suit)
To the Director of Police
Whereas in this suit you were required to arrest the .............................. and to keep the same
under safe arrest until you should receive further orders from this Court. You are now
required to release the said .......................... from the arrest effected by virtue of the warrant
of this Court in this suit.
Registrar
Taken out by ..................... *barrister and solicitor*/ pleader for the .........................................
Indorsement of Director of Police
On ..................................... the ............................... day of ........................... 19......, the
............................... was released from arrest pursuant to this instrument.
(Signed)
Director of Police
* delete whichever is not applicable.
______
FORM NO. CIV/45
RULES OF COURT
(O.48, r.13)
REQUEST FOR RELEASE OF ARRESTED PROPERTY
(Heading as in suit)
I ................................ of .............................. *barrister and solicitor*/ pleader for the
plaintiff*/ defendant in this suit against (description of property, giving name if a ship) now
under arrest by virtue of a warrant issued out of the Supreme Court request the issue of a
release with respect to the said ......................................................................... .
Dated the ........................... day of .................. 19....... .
(Signed)
* delete whichever is not applicable.
______
FORM NO. CIV/46
RULES OF COURT
(O.48, r.14)
REQUEST FOR CAVEAT AGAINST RELEASE AND PAYMENT
(Description of property, giving name if a ship)
I ........................... of .................................. *barrister and solicitor*/ pleader for of request a
caveat against the issue of a release with respect to (description of property, giving name if a
ship) now under arrest and, should the said property be sold by order of the Court, a caveat
against payment out of court of the proceeds of sale.
Dated the .................... day of .................... 19........ .
(Signed)
* delete whichever is not applicable.
______
FORM NO. CIV/47
RULES OF COURT
(O.48, r.15)
REQUEST FOR WITHDRAWAL OF CAVEAT
(Description of property; giving name if a ship)
I .................................. of ........................ *barrister and solicitor*/ pleader for
......................... of .................................... request that the caveat (state nature of caveat)
entered on the .................. day of .......................... 19...... on behalf of ................ be
withdrawn.
Dated the ......................... day of ................... 19....... .
(Signed)
* delete whichever is not applicable.
______
FORM NO. CIV/48
RULES OF COURT
(O.48, r.16)
BAIL BOND IN ADMIRALTY ACTION IN REM
(Heading as in suit)
Whereas this Admiralty action in rem against the above-mention property is pending in the
Supreme Court and the parties to the said suit are the above-mentioned plaintiffs and
defendants:
Now, therefore, we, X.Y. of ................................... and Y.Z. of ............................... hereby
jointly and severally submit ourselves to the jurisdiction of the said Court and consent that if
they, the above-mentioned defendants (or plaintiffs, in the case of the counterclaim), do not
pay what may be adjudged against them in this suit, with costs, or do not pay any sum due to
be paid by the them in consequence of any admission of liability therein or under any
agreement by which this suit is settled before judgment and which is filed in the said Court,
execution may issue against us, our executors or administrators, goods and chattels, for the
amount unpaid or an amount of ................ dollars whichever is the less.
(Signed)
This bail bond was signed by the said X.Y. and Y.Z., the sureties, the day of ........................
19..... .
Before me
A Commissioner for Oaths
______
FORM NO. CIV/49
RULES OF COURT
(O.48, r.23)
REQUEST FOR COMMISSION FOR APPRAISEMENT AND SALE
(Heading as in suit)
I .......................................... of .................................. *barrister and solicitor*/ pleader for the
plaintiffs*/ defendants request a commission for the appraisement and sale of (description of
property, giving name if a ships) which was ordered by the Court on the .................... day of
..................... 19....... .
Dated the .......................... day of .................. 19....... .
* delete whichever is not applicable.
______
FORM NO. CIV/50
RULES OF COURT
(O.48, r.23)
COMMISSION FOR APPRAISEMENT AND SALE
(Heading as in suit)
To the Director of Police
Whereas in this suit the Court has ordered (description of property, giving name if a ship) to
be appraised and sold;
YOU are hereby authorised and rewired to choose one or more experienced persons and to
swear him or them to appraise the said ………………… according to the true value thereof,
and such value having been certified in writing by him or them to cause the said
............................ to be sold by private treaty*/ public auction for the highest price that can be
obtained for it, but not for less than the appraised value unless the Court your application
allows it to be sold for less.
And we further command you, immediately upon the sale being completed, to pay the
proceeds thereof into Court and to file the certificate of appraisement signed by you and the
appraiser or appraisers, and an account of the sale signed by you, together with this
commission.
Taken out by ............................ barrister and solicitor*/ pleader for the ........................ on
.................. the ................... day of ........................ 19….. .
Registrar
* delete whichever is not applicable.
______
FORM NO. CIV/51
RULES OF COURT
(O.36, r.11)
NOTICE TO PERSON WHO MAY BE ENTITLED TO DEBT SOUGHT TO BE
ATTACHED
In the (Supreme Court
(District Court
Civil Suit No.
(Heading as in suit)
To M.N.
It is alleged by A.B. the decree-holder in the above suit, that W.X. is indebted to C.D., the
judgment-debtor in that suit, as follows –
(State briefly the nature of the debt)
An order has been made upon the application of A.B. attaching the debt in the hands of W.X.;
A.B., is now seeking an order that W.X. should pay it to him in discharge of his obligation in
respect of it to C.D.
However, it appears that possibly you may be entitled to receive the whole or a part of that
debt from W.X. instead of C.D. If you wish to oppose A.B.'s application for an order that the
debt be paid to him by W.X., you are required to attend before this Court at ............
a.m.*/p.m. .......... on the ..................... day of .................... 19....... at the Court House at
Yaren to state the nature and particulars of your claim that the debt is owed by W.X. to you,
wholly or in part.
PLEASE NOTE THAT, IF YOU DO NOT ATTEND AT THE TIME AND PLACE
STATED ABOVE, AN ORDER MAY BE MADE ON A.B.'S APPLICATION WITHOUT
YOUR BEING HEARD IN THE MATTER.
If you attend to state your claim, you should bring with you any documentary evidence in
your possession which may support your claim.
Registrar*/ Resident Magistrate
*delete whichever is not applicable.
_____
APPENDIX B
(O.40, r.4)
COSTS IN CERTAIN SUITS
COSTS WHERE PAYMENT OF LIQUIDATED DEMAND IS MADE BEFORE
APPEARANCE AND BEFORE JUDGMENT
A. BASIC COSTS
Supreme Court
If the amount recovered is -
less than $200 $20
not less than $200 but less than $1,000 $25
not less than $1,000 $30
District Court
If the amount recovered is -
less than $50 $5
not less than $50 but less than $200 $10
not less than $200 $20
B. ADDITIONAL COSTS
Supreme Court and District Court
1. Where there is more than one defendant, in respect of each additional
defendant served $1
2. Where substituted- service is ordered and effected in respect of each
defendant served $8
3. Where service outside Nauru is ordered and effected $25
PART 2
COSTS WHERE FINAL JUDGMENT IS ENTERED IN DEFAULT OF
APPEARANCE OF DEFENCE FOR A DEBT OR LIQUIDATED AMOUNT ONLY
A. BASIC COSTS
Supreme Court
If the amount recovered is -
less than $200 $25
not less than $200 but less than $1,000 $30 $30
not less than $1,000 $40
District Court
If the amount recovered is -
less than $50 $10
not less than $50 but less than $200 $15
not less than $200 $25
B. ADDITIONAL COSTS
Supreme Court and District Court
Items 1, 2 and 3 as Items 1, 2 and 3 in Part 1B
4. In a moneylender's case, on application for leave to enter judgment $5
PART 3
GARNISHEE PROCEEDINGS
A. DECREE-HOLDER'S COSTS
Supreme Court and District Court
Where the decree-holder recovers from the garnishee:-
(1) less than $10 No Costs
(2) from $10 to $20 inclusive $5
(3) over $20 $15
(4) where the garnishee fails to attend hearing and an affidavit of
service is required (extra) $5
B. GARNISHEE'S COSTS
Supreme Court and District Court
In cases with no affidavit $5
In cases with affidavit $10
PART 4
MISCELLANEOUS FIXED COSTS
Supreme Court and District Court, where appropriate
1. Costs of judgment on discontinuance or on acceptance of money paid
into court $4
2. Costs of registering a foreign judgment $20
3. Removal of judgment from District Court $5
4. Costs on application for writ of possession and for each additional
person served $1
5. Costs of applying to enforce judgement $5
6. Costs of issuing execution $5
--------------